Selected quad for the lemma: book_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
book_n canonical_a church_n council_n 2,601 5 7.0385 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A11516 The historie of the Councel of Trent Conteining eight bookes. In which (besides the ordinarie actes of the Councell) are declared many notable occurrences, which happened in Christendome, during the space of fourtie yeeres and more. And, particularly, the practises of the Court of Rome, to hinder the reformation of their errors, and to maintaine their greatnesse. Written in Italian by Pietro Soaue Polano, and faithfully translated into English by Nathanael Brent.; Historia del Concilio tridentino. English Sarpi, Paolo, 1552-1623.; Brent, Nathaniel, Sir, 1573?-1652. 1629 (1629) STC 21762; ESTC S116697 1,096,909 905

There are 37 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

write_v the_o decalogue_n in_o stone_n with_o his_o own_o finger_n command_v it_o shall_v be_v lay_v up_o in_o the_o cabinet_n call_v the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenant_n that_o he_o often_o command_v moses_n to_o write_v the_o precept_n in_o a_o book_n and_o that_o one_o copy_n shall_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o ark_n and_o the_o king_n have_v another_o to_o read_v it_o continual_o this_o fall_v not_o out_o in_o the_o gospel_n which_o the_o son_n of_o god_n write_v in_o the_o heart_n for_o which_o neither_o table_n nor_o chest_n nor_o book_n be_v necessary_a yea_o the_o church_n be_v most_o perfect_a before_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n write_v and_o though_o they_o have_v write_v nothing_o the_o church_n will_v have_v want_v nothing_o of_o its_o perfection_n but_o as_o christ_n found_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o the_o heart_n so_o he_o forbid_v it_o not_o to_o be_v write_v as_o in_o some_o false_a religion_n where_o the_o mystery_n be_v keep_v secret_a nor_o be_v lawful_a to_o write_v they_o but_o only_o to_o teach_v they_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v a_o undoubted_a truth_n that_o whatsoever_o the_o apostle_n have_v write_v and_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v teach_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n because_o they_o write_v and_o speak_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o notwithstanding_o as_o by_o assist_v they_o it_o have_v direct_v they_o to_o write_v and_o preach_v the_o truth_n so_o it_o can_v be_v say_v it_o have_v forbid_v they_o to_o write_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o end_n to_o hold_v it_o in_o mystery_n wherefore_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v distinguish_v into_o two_o kind_n some_o publish_v by_o writing_n other_o command_v to_o be_v communicate_v only_o by_o voice_n he_o say_v that_o whosoever_o think_v otherwise_o must_v fight_v against_o two_o great_a difficulty_n the_o one_o to_o tell_v wherein_o the_o difference_n be_v the_o other_o how_o the_o apostle_n successor_n have_v be_v able_a to_o write_v that_o which_o be_v forbid_v by_o god_n add_v that_o it_o be_v as_o hard_o to_o maintain_v the_o three_o that_o be_v how_o it_o have_v accidental_o happen_v that_o some_o particular_n have_v not_o be_v write_v because_o it_o will_v derogate_v from_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n in_o direct_v the_o holy_a apostle_n to_o compose_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n therefore_o scripture_n the_o father_n never_o make_v tradition_n of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o scripture_n he_o conclude_v that_o to_o enter_v into_o this_o treaty_n be_v to_o sail_v between_o scriptu●e_n and_o charybdis_n and_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o imitate_v the_o father_n who_o serve_v themselves_o of_o this_o place_n only_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n never_o think_v to_o make_v of_o it_o a_o article_n of_o competition_n against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o proceed_v now_o to_o any_o new_a determination_n because_o the_o lutheran_n though_o they_o say_v they_o will_v be_v convince_v by_o the_o scripture_n only_o have_v not_o make_v a_o controversy_n in_o this_o article_n and_o that_o it_o be_v good_a to_o keep_v themselves_o only_o to_o the_o controversy_n which_o they_o have_v promote_v without_o set_v new_a on_o foot_n expose_v themselves_o to_o the_o danger_n of_o make_v a_o great_a division_n in_o christendom_n the_o friar_n opinion_n please_v but_o few_o yea_o cardinal_n poole_n reprehend_v it_o distasteful_a the_o opinion_n of_o marinarus_n be_v very_o distasteful_a and_o say_v it_o better_o beseem_v a_o colloquy_n in_o germany_n than_o a_o council_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o in_o this_o they_o shall_v aim_v at_o the_o sincere_a verity_n itself_o not_o as_o there_o where_o nothing_o be_v handle_v but_o the_o according_a of_o the_o party_n though_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o to_o preserve_v the_o church_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o lutheran_n shall_v receive_v all_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n or_o that_o as_o many_o of_o their_o error_n as_o be_v possible_a may_v be_v discover_v the_o more_o to_o make_v manifest_a to_o the_o world_n that_o there_o be_v no_o agreement_n to_o be_v make_v with_o they_o therefore_o if_o they_o have_v frame_v no_o controversy_n concern_v tradition_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o frame_v it_o now_o and_o to_o condemn_v their_o opinion_n and_o to_o show_v that_o that_o doctrine_n not_o only_o differ_v from_o the_o true_a in_o that_o wherein_o it_o do_v purposely_o contradict_v it_o but_o in_o all_o other_o part_n that_o they_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o condemn_v as_o many_o absurdity_n as_o can_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o their_o writing_n and_o that_o the_o fear_n be_v vain_a to_o dash_v against_o scylla_n or_o charybdis_n for_o that_o captious_a reason_n whereunto_o whosoever_o give_v ear●_n will_v conclude_v there_o be_v no_o tradition_n at_o all_o in_o the_o second_o article_n they_o all_o agree_v in_o this_o that_o a_o catalogue_n shall_v be_v scripture_n concern_v the_o canon_n call_v book_n of_o the_o scripture_n make_v as_o it_o be_v in_o former_a time_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n in_o which_o all_o shall_v be_v register_v which_o be_v read_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n even_o those_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v never_o receive_v by_o the_o hebrew_n and_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o they_o all_o allege_v the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n pope_n innocence_n the_o first_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o pope_n gelasius_n but_o there_o be_v four_o opinion_n some_o will_v have_v two_o rank_n make_v in_o the_o first_o only_o those_o shall_v be_v put_v which_o without_o contradiction_n have_v be_v receive_v by_o all_o in_o the_o other_o those_o which_o sometime_o have_v be_v reject_v or_o have_v have_v doubt_n make_v of_o they_o and_o it_o be_v say_v though_o former_o this_o be_v never_o do_v by_o any_o council_n or_o pope_n yet_o always_o it_o be_v so_o understand_v for_o austin_n make_v such_o a_o distinction_n and_o his_o authority_n have_v be_v canonize_v in_o the_o chapter_n in_o canonicis_fw-la and_o saint_n gregory_n who_o be_v after_o gelasius_n write_v upon_o job_n say_v of_o the_o maccabee_n that_o they_o be_v write_v for_o edification_n though_o they_o be_v not_o canonical_a aloisius_n of_o catanea_n a_o domican_a friar_n say_v that_o this_o distinction_n be_v make_v by_o saint_n hierome_n who_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n as_o a_o rule_n and_o direction_n to_o appoint_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o he_o allege_v cardinal_n caietan_n who_o have_v distinguish_v they_o follow_v saint_n hierom_n as_o a_o infallible_a rule_n give_v we_o by_o the_o church_n and_o so_o he_o write_v to_o pope_n clement_n the_o seven_o when_o he_o send_v he_o his_o exposition_n upon_o the_o historical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n some_o think_v fit_a to_o establish_v three_o rank_n the_o first_o of_o those_o which_o always_o have_v be_v hold_v for_o divine_a the_o second_o of_o those_o whereof_o sometime_o doubt_n have_v be_v make_v but_o by_o use_n have_v obtain_v canonical_a authority_n in_o which_o number_n be_v the_o six_o epistle_n and_o the_o apocalyps_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o some_o small_a part_n of_o the_o evangelist_n the_o three_o of_o those_o whereof_o there_o have_v never_o be_v any_o assurance_n as_o be_v the_o seven_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o some_o chapter_n of_o daniel_n and_o hester_n some_o think_v it_o better_a to_o make_v no_o distinction_n at_o all_o but_o to_o imitate_v the_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o other_o make_v the_o catalogue_n and_o say_v no_o more_o another_o opinion_n be_v that_o all_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v in_o all_o part_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o latin_a bible_n of_o divine_a and_o equal_a authority_n the_o book_n of_o baruc_n trouble_v they_o most_o which_o be_v not_o put_v in_o the_o number_n neither_o by_o the_o laodicean_n nor_o by_o those_o of_o carthage_n nor_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o therefore_o shall_v be_v leave_v out_o as_o well_o for_o this_o reason_n as_o because_o the_o beginning_n of_o it_o can_v be_v find_v but_o because_o it_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n the_o congregation_n esteem_v this_o a_o potent_a reason_n resolve_v that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o ancient_n account_v a_o part_n of_o jeremie_n and_o comprise_v with_o he_o in_o the_o congregation_n on_o friday_n the_o five_o of_o march_n advise_v be_v come_v pensionary_n the_o bishop_n of_o bitonto_n assist_v in_o council_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o excommunication_n in_o rome_n for_o not_o pay_v his_o pensionary_n that_o the_o pensionary_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o bitonto_n have_v demand_v in_o rome_n to_o be_v pay_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n have_v cite_v he_o before_o the_o auditor_n
with_o all_o their_o might_n and_o the_o prelate_n allege_v that_o they_o belong_v to_o they_o and_o be_v usurp_v pretend_a restitution_n and_o because_o the_o contention_n be_v here_o not_o of_o opinion_n but_o of_o profit_n they_o use_v on_o both_o side_n not_o only_a reason_n but_o deed_n also_o which_o difference_n be_v set_v on_o foot_n that_o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o session_n nothing_o may_v be_v decide_v therefore_o the_o legate_n resolve_v to_o defer_v these_o two_o point_n until_o another_o session_n two_o decree_n be_v frame_v as_o former_o be_v resolve_v and_o be_v read_v in_o the_o last_o congregation_n and_o approve_v yet_o with_o some_o exception_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n in_o the_o end_n hereof_o the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n after_o he_o have_v commend_v the_o learning_n and_o wisdom_n of_o they_o all_o admonish_v they_o of_o the_o seemly_a behaviour_n which_o be_v fit_a to_o use_v in_o the_o public_a session_n show_v one_o heart_n and_o one_o mind_n in_o regard_n the_o point_n be_v sufficient_o examine_v in_o the_o congregation_n and_o the_o congregation_n be_v end_v the_o cardinal_n santa_n croce_n assemble_v those_o that_o have_v oppose_v the_o vulgar_a edition_n and_o show_v they_o can_v not_o complain_v because_o it_o be_v not_o prohibit_v but_o leave_v free_a to_o correct_v it_o and_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o edition_n no_o error_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n the_o original_n but_o that_o only_o it_o be_v forbid_v to_o say_v there_o be_v in_o it_o error_n of_o faith_n for_o which_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v reject_v the_o eight_o of_o april_n appoint_v for_o the_o session_n be_v come_v the_o mass_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v say_v by_o saluator_fw-la alepus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o torre_n in_o sardinia_n and_o the_o sermon_n be_v make_v by_o friar_n austin_n of_o aretium_n general_n of_o the_o serui_fw-la the_o pontifical_a habiliment_n put_v on_o the_o accustom_a litany_n and_o prayer_n make_v and_o the_o decree_v read_v by_o the_o archbishop_n that_o say_v mass_n the_o first_o contain_v in_o substance_n that_o the_o synod_n aim_v to_o preserve_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n promise_v by_o the_o prophet_n publish_v by_o christ_n and_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n session_n two_o decree_n read_v in_o the_o session_n as_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o truth_n and_o discipline_n of_o manner_n which_o truth_n and_o discipline_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o book_n and_o unwritten_a tradition_n receive_v by_o former_a the_o content_n of_o the_o former_a the_o apostle_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n and_o dictate_v to_o they_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o pass_v from_o one_o to_o another_o do_v according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o the_o father_n receive_v with_o equal_a reverence_n all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o tradition_n belong_v to_o faith_n and_o manner_n as_o proceed_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n or_o dictate_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o preserve_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o set_v down_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o book_n conclude_v that_o if_o any_o will_v not_o receive_v they_o all_o as_o sacred_a and_o canonical_a in_o all_o part_n as_o they_o be_v read_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o contain_v in_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n or_o shall_v witting_o and_o purposely_o despise_v the_o tradition_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n that_o every_o one_o may_v know_v what_o ground_n the_o synod_n will_v use_v in_o confirm_v the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o reform_v of_o manner_n in_o the_o church_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o second_o decree_n be_v that_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n shall_v be_v decree_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o second_o decree_n hold_v for_o authentical_a in_o public_a lecture_n disputation_n sermon_n and_o exposition_n and_o that_o none_o shall_v dare_v to_o refuse_v it_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n can_v be_v expound_v against_o the_o sense_n hold_v by_o the_o holy_a mother_n the_o church_n nor_o against_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n though_o with_o purpose_n to_o conceal_v those_o exposition_n and_o that_o the_o offender_n shall_v be_v punish_v by_o the_o ordinary_n that_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n shall_v be_v most_o exact_o print_v that_o no_o book_n of_o religion_n be_v print_v sell_v or_o keep_v without_o the_o author_n name_n and_o that_o the_o approbation_n appear_v in_o the_o frontispiece_n of_o the_o book_n upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n and_o pecuniary_a punishment_n constitute_v by_o the_o last_o lateran_n council_n that_o none_o shall_v dare_v to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o scurrility_n fable_n vanity_n flattery_n detraction_n superstition_n enchantment_n divination_n casting_n of_o lot_n libel_n and_o that_o the_o transgressor_n shall_v be_v punish_v at_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o it_o be_v determine_v to_o hold_v the_o next_o june_n the_o next_o session_n be_v to_o be_v he●d_v the_o 17._o of_o june_n session_n the_o 17._o of_o june_n afterward_o the_o commission_n of_o don_n diego_n de_fw-fr mendoza_n and_o francis_n de_fw-fr toledo_n the_o emperor_n ambassador_n be_v read_v by_o the_o secretary_n of_o the_o council_n read_v the_o commission_n of_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n be_v read_v don_n diego_n be_v absent_a and_o the_o other_o have_v in_o the_o emperor_n name_n salute_v the_o father_n in_o few_o word_n say_v in_o substance_n that_o all_o the_o world_n know_v that_o the_o emperor_n think_v nothing_o to_o befit_v he_o more_o than_o not_o only_o to_o defend_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n from_o enemy_n but_o to_o free_v it_o from_o tumult_n and_o sedition_n therefore_o that_o he_o rejoice_v to_o see_v the_o day_n when_o the_o council_n publish_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v open_v and_o that_o be_v willing_a to_o favour_v that_o occasion_n with_o his_o power_n and_o authority_n he_o have_v send_v thither_o mendoza_n unto_o who_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o indisposition_n himself_o be_v join_v so_o that_o nothing_o remain_v but_o to_o pray_v god_n uniform_o that_o he_o will_v favour_v the_o enterprise_n of_o the_o council_n and_o which_o be_v the_o principal_a will_v preserve_v peace_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n for_o the_o establish_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n restore_v the_o church_n to_o her_o purity_n &_o weed_n the_o cockle_n out_o of_o the_o lord_n field_n answer_n be_v make_v by_o the_o council_n that_o his_o lordship_n come_n be_v most_o acceptable_a both_o for_o the_o duty_n they_o do_v owe_v the_o emperor_n and_o for_o the_o favour_n he_o promise_v they_o have_v also_o much_o hope_n in_o the_o realty_n &_o religion_n of_o his_o lordship_n that_o they_o embrace_v he_o with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o do_v admit_v as_o far_o as_o they_o can_v with_o reason_n the_o mandate_n of_o caesar_n that_o they_o be_v sorry_a for_o the_o indisposition_n of_o his_o colleague_n and_o thank_v god_n for_o the_o peace_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n pray_v he_o to_o favour_v the_o desire_n of_o they_o both_o for_o the_o increase_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n these_o thing_n be_v do_v with_o the_o usual_a ceremony_n the_o session_n end_v the_o decree_n whereof_o be_v send_v to_o rome_n by_o the_o legate_n and_o a_o little_a after_o print_v but_o after_o they_o be_v see_v especial_o in_o germany_n they_o minister_v great_a religion_n a_o few_o prelate_n and_o not_o learned_a do_v decide_v the_o great_a point_n of_o religion_n matter_n of_o discourse_n some_o think_v it_o strange_a that_o five_o cardinal_n and_o 48._o bishop_n shall_v so_o easy_o define_v the_o most_o principal_a and_o important_a point_n of_o religion_n never_o decide_v before_o give_v canonical_a authority_n to_o book_n hold_v for_o uncertain_a and_o apocryphal_a make_v authentical_a a_o translation_n differ_v from_o the_o original_n prescribe_v and_o restrain_v the_o manner_n to_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o god_n neither_o be_v there_o among_o these_o prelate_n any_o one_o remarkable_a for_o learning_n some_o of_o they_o be_v lawyer_n perhaps_o learned_a in_o that_o profession_n but_o of_o little_a understanding_n in_o religion_n few_o divine_n but_o of_o less_o than_o ordinary_a sufficiency_n the_o great_a number_n gentleman_n or_o courtier_n and_o for_o their_o dignity_n some_o be_v only_o titular_a and_o the_o mayor_n part_v bishop_n of_o so_o small_a city_n that_o suppose_v every_o one_o to_o represent_v his_o people_n it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v that_o one_o of_o a_o thousand_o in_o christendom_n be_v represent_v but_o particular_o of_o germany_n there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o bishop_n or_o divine_a be_v it_o possible_a that_o among_o so_o many_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v send_v why_o do_v not_o the_o emperor_n cause_n some_o of_o they_o to_o go_v who_o assist_v in_o the_o
make_v it_o a_o quality_n and_o among_o those_o be_v four_o opinion_n according_a to_o the_o four_o kind_n of_o the_o quality_n some_o a_o spiritual_a power_n some_o a_o habit_n or_o disposition_n other_o a_o spiritual_a figure_n and_o the_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v a_o sensible_a metaphorical_a quality_n do_v not_o want_v abettor_n some_o will_v have_v it_o a_o call_v relation_n some_o a_o fabric_n of_o the_o mind_n who_o be_v to_o declare_v how_o far_o it_o differ_v from_o nothing_o the_o same_o variety_n of_o opinion_n concern_v the_o subject_n be_v trouble_v some_o some_o place_v it_o in_o the_o effende_v of_o the_o soul_n some_o in_o the_o understanding_n some_o in_o the_o will_n and_o there_o want_v not_o who_o give_v it_o place_n in_o the_o hand_n and_o tongue_n jerome_n of_o portugal_n a_o dominican_n friar_n think_v that_o the_o sacrament_n do_v imprint_v a_o spiritual_a quality_n before_o the_o come_n of_o grace_n and_o that_o it_o be_v of_o two_o sport_n one_o bib_n which_o can_v never_o be_v abolish_v the_o other_o which_o may_v be_v lose_v and_o regain_v the_o former_a whereof_o be_v call_v a_o character_n and_o the_o late_a a_o certain_a ornament_n the_o sacrament_n which_o give_v the_o first_o can_v be_v reiterated_a because_o their_o effect_n ever_o remain_v the_o other_o may_v when_o their_o effect_n be_v lose_v this_o carry_v a_o fair_a show_n but_o be_v not_o approve_v by_o many_o because_o there_o be_v no_o other_o author_n to_o be_v find_v of_o that_o ornament_n but_o saint_n thomas_n who_o also_o though_o he_o beget_v it_o yet_o do_v not_o think_v it_o worthy_a of_o education_n but_o howsoever_o all_o agree_v in_o this_o general_a that_o three_o sacrament_n have_v the_o character_n yet_o some_o do_v say_v modest_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v approve_v as_o more_o probable_a not_o as_o necessary_a character_n three_o sacrament_n have_v a_o character_n other_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n because_o innocentius_n the_o three_o make_v mention_n of_o it_o and_o be_v so_o define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n the_o article_n that_o the_o honesty_n of_o the_o minister_n be_v not_o necessary_a be_v so_o discuss_v by_o saint_n austin_n in_o so_o many_o book_n against_o the_o donatist_n that_o the_o divine_n do_v all_o agree_v and_o beside_o it_o be_v allege_v for_o a_o principal_a ground_n that_o the_o article_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n among_o the_o error_n of_o john_n wickliefe_n they_o all_o condemn_v the_o eleven_o article_n as_o contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n tradition_n and_o use_v of_o the_o universal_a church_n the_o twelve_o of_o the_o form_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v distinguish_v as_o receive_v two_o sense_n understand_v by_o form_n either_o the_o essential_a word_n as_o it_o be_v say_v that_o every_o sacrament_n have_v for_o matter_n the_o sensible_a element_n and_o for_o form_n the_o word_n or_o understand_v by_o form_n all_o the_o form_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o ministry_n which_o include_v many_o thing_n not_o necessary_a but_o decent_a and_o they_o think_v fit_a to_o make_v two_o canon_n thereof_o by_o the_o first_o condemn_v he_o of_o heresy_n that_o say_v that_o the_o form_n may_v be_v change_v be_v institute_v by_o christ_n but_o for_o the_o second_o sense_n though_o accidental_a thing_n may_v receive_v mutation_n yet_o when_o any_o rite_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o public_a authority_n or_o receive_v and_o confirm_v by_o common_a use_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v in_o every_o man_n power_n to_o change_v it_o but_o only_o in_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a when_o it_o be_v convenient_a for_o some_o new_a respect_n in_o the_o thirteen_o of_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o minister_n they_o can_v not_o dissent_v from_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n which_o hold_v it_o necessary_a but_o what_o intention_n sacrament_n concern_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o minister_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v require_v be_v hard_o to_o express_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o variety_n of_o opinion_n about_o the_o efficacy_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n because_o there_o can_v be_v the_o same_o intention_n of_o two_o who_o have_v diverse_a opinion_n the_o common_a answer_n be_v that_o the_o intention_n to_o do_v as_o the_o church_n do_v be_v sufficient_a notwithstanding_o this_o exposition_n the_o difficulty_n remain_v for_o that_o man_n opinion_n what_o the_o church_n be_v be_v diverse_a their_o intention_n in_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n will_v prove_v various_a also_o it_o seem_v they_o may_v say_v it_o be_v not_o different_a when_o all_o have_v the_o same_o aim_n to_o do_v that_o which_o have_v be_v institute_v by_o christ_n and_o observe_v by_o the_o church_n though_o a_o false_a church_n be_v take_v for_o a_o true_a so_o that_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o be_v the_o same_o in_o this_o particular_a the_o bishop_n of_o minori_fw-la propose_v a_o thing_n worthy_a to_o be_v repeat_v minister_n a_o discourse_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o minori_fw-la about_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o minister_n here_o and_o esteem_v by_o all_o to_o deserve_v great_a consideration_n he_o say_v that_o to_o the_o lutheran_n who_o give_v no_o other_o virtue_n to_o the_o sacrament_n then_o to_o excite_v faith_n which_o notwithstanding_o may_v be_v stir_v up_o some_o other_o way_n it_o do_v little_a import_n to_o receive_v the_o true_a sacrament_n whereupon_o they_o say_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a and_o think_v it_o not_o convenient_a that_o the_o malice_n of_o a_o wicked_a minister_n who_o have_v no_o intention_n to_o confer_v the_o true_a sacrament_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o hurt_v because_o we_o be_v to_o regard_v what_o the_o faithful_a receive_v and_o not_o what_o be_v give_v but_o among_o the_o catholic_n who_o do_v true_o attribute_v to_o the_o sacrament_n power_n to_o give_v grace_n to_o he_o that_o do_v not_o resist_v it_o see_v it_o happen_v very_o seldom_o that_o grace_n be_v obtain_v by_o any_o other_o mean_n sure_o little_a child_n and_o many_o who_o have_v but_o small_a understanding_n be_v save_v no_o other_o way_n and_o ordinary_a man_n have_v so_o weak_a a_o disposition_n that_o it_o will_v not_o suffice_v without_o the_o sacrament_n and_o those_o few_o who_o as_o phonix_n have_v a_o perfect_a disposition_n yet_o do_v receive_v great_a grace_n by_o the_o sacrament_n therefore_o it_o much_o concern_v a_o christian_n to_o be_v assure_v that_o he_o receive_v that_o which_o be_v true_a and_o effectual_a if_o a_o priest_n have_v charge_n of_o four_o or_o five_o thousand_o soul_n be_v a_o infidel_n but_o a_o formal_a hypocrite_n and_o in_o absolve_a the_o penitent_a baptise_v of_o child_n and_o consecrate_v the_o eucharist_n have_v a_o intention_n not_o to_o do_v what_o the_o church_n do_v it_o must_v be_v say_v that_o the_o child_n be_v damn_v the_o penitent_a not_o absolve_v and_o that_o all_o remain_v without_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o communion_n neither_o be_v it_o enough_o to_o say_v that_o faith_n suppli_v because_o it_o do_v not_o help_v child_n at_o all_o according_a to_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n nor_o other_o so_o much_o as_o the_o sacrament_n and_o to_o attribute_v so_o great_a virtue_n to_o faith_n be_v to_o take_v all_o virtue_n from_o the_o sacrament_n and_o to_o fall_v into_o the_o lutheran_n opinion_n he_o consider_v how_o a_o tender_a father_n will_v be_v afflict_v when_o his_o son_n be_v about_o to_o die_v if_o he_o doubt_v of_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o baptise_v priest_n so_o he_o that_o feel_v himself_o of_o a_o weak_a disposition_n and_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v what_o anxiety_n will_v he_o have_v that_o perhaps_o the_o priest_n be_v a_o counterfeit_n christian_a and_o mock_v he_o not_o mean_v to_o baptize_v he_o but_o only_o to_o wash_v he_o in_o jest_n and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v fear_v in_o confession_n and_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n he_o add_v if_o any_o say_v these_o case_n be_v rare_a will_v to_o god_n it_o be_v so_o and_o that_o in_o this_o corrupt_a age_n we_o have_v not_o cause_n to_o doubt_v they_o be_v many_o but_o suppose_v they_o be_v very_o few_o or_o but_o one_o only_a let_v there_o be_v a_o knave_n priest_n who_o feign_v and_o have_v not_o a_o intention_n to_o administer_v the_o true_a baptism_n to_o a_o child_n who_o after_o be_v a_o man_n grow_v be_v create_v bishop_n of_o a_o great_a city_n and_o live_v many_o year_n in_o that_o charge_n so_o that_o he_o have_v ordain_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o priest_n it_o must_v be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o baptize_v be_v not_o ordain_v nor_o they_o ordain_v who_o be_v promote_v by_o he_o so_o in_o that_o great_a city_n there_o will_v be_v neither_o eucharist_n nor_o confession_n because_o they_o can_v be_v
liberty_n and_o the_o protestant_a preacher_n be_v recall_v the_o diet_n be_v desert_v year_n in_o many_o part_n between_o diverse_a prince_n and_o city_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o the_o city_n recall_v their_o preacher_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n and_o restore_v the_o church_n school_n and_o exercise_v of_o religion_n and_o though_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o banishment_n and_o persecution_n against_o the_o doctor_n and_o preacher_n there_o remain_v but_o few_o of_o they_o and_o those_o conceal_v under_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o prince_n yet_o as_o if_o they_o have_v rise_v again_o there_o want_v not_o to_o furnish_v all_o place_n the_o war_n hinder_v the_o assemble_v of_o the_o diet_n disseign_v and_o defer_v it_o from_o one_o year_n to_o another_o until_o february_n 1555._o whereof_o we_o will_v speak_v in_o the_o fit_a place_n the_o five_o book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o pope_n now_o free_v from_o many_o care_n by_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o council_n think_v fit_a to_o prevent_v all_o occasion_n of_o relapse_n and_o propose_v in_o consistory_n the_o necessity_n to_o reform_v the_o church_n the_o pope_n make_v a_o great_a show_n that_o he_o will_v reform_v the_o church_n church_n he_o say_v he_o have_v reduce_v the_o council_n to_o trent_n for_o this_o end_n which_o have_v not_o succeed_v according_a to_o his_o desire_n in_o regard_n of_o diverse_a accident_n of_o war_n first_o in_o italy_n then_o in_o germany_n it_o be_v meet_v to_o do_v that_o in_o rome_n which_o in_o trent_n can_v not_o be_v do_v he_o appoint_v therefore_o a_o great_a congregation_n of_o cardinal_n and_o prelate_n to_o consider_v of_o the_o business_n he_o say_v he_o elect_v many_o that_o resolution_n may_v be_v more_o mature_a and_o have_v great_a reputation_n though_o his_o end_n be_v think_v to_o be_v that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o multitude_n more_o impediment_n may_v arise_v and_o so_o all_o may_v come_v to_o nothing_o and_o the_o event_n be_v judge_v for_o the_o reformation_n be_v handle_v in_o the_o begin_n with_o great_a heat_n afterward_o it_o go_v on_o for_o the_o space_n of_o many_o month_n very_o cold_o and_o at_o the_o last_o be_v bury_v in_o silence_n and_o the_o suspension_n of_o the_o council_n in_o ten_o the_o suspension_n of_o y_fw-fr e_o council_n make_v for_o two_o year_n last_v ten_o stead_n of_o two_o year_n do_v continue_v ten_o verify_v the_o maxim_n of_o the_o philosopher_n that_o the_o cause_n cease_v the_o effect_n do_v cease_v also_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o council_n be_v first_o the_o great_a instance_n of_o germany_n and_o the_o hope_n conceive_v by_o the_o world_n that_o it_o will_v cure_v all_o the_o disease_n of_o christendom_n but_o the_o effect_n that_o be_v see_v under_o paul_n the_o three_o do_v extinguish_v council_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o two_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n the_o hope_n and_o show_v to_o germany_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o have_v such_o a_o council_n as_o they_o desire_v of_o the_o second_o reduction_n of_o the_o synod_n there_o be_v another_o cause_n which_o be_v the_o great_a desire_n of_o charles_n the_o emperor_n to_o put_v germany_n under_o his_o yoke_n by_o mean_n of_o religion_n and_o to_o make_v the_o empire_n hereditary_a by_o cause_v his_o son_n to_o succeed_v he_o and_o so_o to_o erect_v a_o monarchy_n great_a than_o any_o since_o the_o roman_a even_o then_o that_o of_o charles_n the_o great_a for_o this_o the_o victory_n he_o have_v obtain_v be_v not_o sufficient_a 〈…〉_o 1553_o i_o 〈…〉_o 3._o 〈…〉_o charles_n 〈…〉_o edward_z 〈…〉_o henry_n 〈…〉_o neither_o do_v he_o think_v he_o can_v supply_v what_o be_v want_v by_o new_a force_n only_o but_o supect_v the_o people_n unto_o he_o by_o religion_n and_o the_o prince_n by_o treaty_n he_o have_v conceive_v a_o vast_a hope_n to_o immortallize_v his_o name_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o he_o be_v so_o earnest_a with_o jul_n 〈…〉_o for_o the_o second_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n and_o of_o his_o effectual_a persuasion_n not_o to_o call_v they_o violent_a hereditary_a charles_n use_v mean_n to_o make_v the_o empire_n hereditary_a to_o the_o three_o elector_n to_o go_v thither_o and_o to_o the_o protestent_n with_o who_o he_o have_v power_n to_o send_v their_o druine_n but_o while_o the_o council_n be_v celebrate_v charles_n have_v put_v all_o christian_a prince_n in_o jealousy_n find_v the_o first_o encounter_n in_o his_o own_o house_n for_o ferdinand_n though_o he_o seem_v former_o to_o have_v consent_v to_o make_v the_o empire_n common_a to_o they_o both_o as_o it_o be_v to_o marcus_n and_o lucius_n with_o equal_a authority_n a_o example_n follow_v by_o dioclesian_n and_o many_o other_o afterward_o and_o then_o to_o labour_v that_o philip_n shall_v be_v choose_v king_n of_o the_o roman_n to_o succeed_v they_o wherein_o charles_n have_v employ_v it_o but_o can_v effect_v it_o his_o sister_n the_o queen_n of_o hungary_n to_o persuade_v he_o to_o it_o for_o the_o advancement_n of_o their_o house_n yet_o better_o advise_v by_o his_o son_n maximilian_n he_o begin_v to_o change_v his_o opinion_n to_o effect_v this_o business_n already_o set_v on_o foot_n philip_n be_v call_v by_o his_o father_n that_o he_o may_v be_v know_v to_o the_o elector_n in_o the_o diet_n of_o ausburg_n in_o the_o year_n 1551._o which_o make_v ferdinand_n retire_v himself_o &_o the_o foresay_a queen_n to_o go_v thither_o to_o make_v peace_n between_o the_o brother_n but_o maximilian_n fear_v that_o his_o father_n out_o of_o his_o good_a nature_n will_v yield_v leave_v the_o government_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o spain_n which_o the_o emperor_n have_v give_v he_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o wife_n the_o emperor_n daughter_n return_v sudden_o into_o germany_n by_o who_o persuasion_n ferdinand_n remain_v constant_a in_o his_o purpose_n and_o charles_n have_v nothing_o from_o the_o elector_n but_o good_a word_n by_o this_o opposition_n the_o emperor_n edge_n be_v abate_v who_o send_v his_o son_n back_o into_o spain_n without_o hope_n ever_o to_o obtain_v the_o consent_n of_o maximilian_n and_o afterward_o be_v compel_v by_o the_o foresay_a war_n to_o make_v a_o agreement_n despair_v of_o his_o son_n succession_n he_o lay_v aside_o all_o thought_n of_o restore_v the_o ancient_a religion_n in_o germany_n and_o by_o consequence_n all_o care_n of_o the_o council_n though_o he_o continue_v many_o year_n after_o in_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o court_n do_v care_n for_o it_o as_o little_a because_o none_o do_v desire_v it_o but_o diverse_a accident_n then_o happen_v council_n which_o cause_v he_o to_o lay_v aside_o all_o care_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o council_n which_o though_o they_o seem_v to_o make_v the_o suspension_n perpetual_a yet_o in_o the_o secret_a providence_n of_o god_n do_v minister_v cause_n for_o the_o three_o convocation_n which_o the_o continuation_n of_o the_o story_n require_v shall_v not_o be_v pass_v over_o in_o silence_n in_o regard_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o cause_n do_v help_n much_o to_o penetrate_v the_o effect_n which_o happen_v after_o that_o the_o council_n be_v resume_v the_o pope_n see_v that_o the_o people_n of_o his_o obedience_n do_v not_o so_o much_o esteem_v he_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o alienation_n of_o germany_n do_v imitate_v eugenius_n the_o four_o 1553._o 1553._o who_o maintain_v the_o reputation_n which_o the_o council_n of_o basill_n take_v from_o reputation_n how_o y_o e_o pope_n maintain_v his_o reputation_n he_o by_o a_o show_n of_o grecian_n and_o a_o shadow_n of_o armenian_n and_o the_o late_a example_n of_o his_o predecessor_n paulus_n 3._o who_o when_o the_o contention_n be_v ho●e_v between_o he_o and_o the_o emperor_n for_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o council_n to_o bolonia_n for_o which_o the_o people_n also_o do_v distaste_v he_o receive_v with_o many_o ceremony_n on_o steven_n by_o the_o name_n of_o patriarch_n of_o armenia_n the_o great_a with_o one_o archbishop_n and_o 2._o bishop_n who_o come_v to_o knowledge_n he_o for_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o general_a commander_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o render_v he_o obedience_n according_a to_o these_o example_n julius_n do_v receive_v with_o much_o public_a solemnity_n one_o simon_n sul●akam_n elect_v patriarch_n of_o all_o the_o people_n which_o be_v between_o euphrates_n and_o india_n send_v from_o those_o church_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n successor_n of_o peter_n and_o vicar_n of_o christ_n he_o ordain_v he_o bishop_n and_o give_v he_o the_o patriarchall_a robe_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n in_o the_o consistory_n and_o send_v he_o back_o to_o his_o home_n that_o the_o church_n may_v not_o suffer_v in_o his_o absence_n accompany_v with_o some_o religious_a man_n who_o understand_v the_o syriaque_fw-la tongue_n all_o the_o discourse_n be_v not_o
coccus_n archbishop_n of_o corfu_n make_v the_o oration_n when_o the_o mass_n be_v end_v 〈◊〉_d a_o question_n between_o the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n and_o hungary_n about_o the_o precedency_n of_o their_o master_n 〈◊〉_d the_o mandate_n of_o prince_n be_v to_o be_v read_v there_o grow_v a_o question_n between_o the_o ambassador_n of_o hungary_n and_o portugal_n each_o pretend_v that_o his_o shall_v first_o be_v read_v as_o of_o the_o more_o eminent_a king_n there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n in_o the_o precedence_n of_o the_o ambassador_n themselves_o because_o that_o of_o portugal_n as_o a_o secular_a sit_v at_o the_o right_a side_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o other_o as_o a_o ecclesiastike_a at_o the_o left_a the_o legate_n have_v consult_v hereof_o say_v that_o the_o mandate_n shall_v be_v read_v in_o the_o order_n as_o they_o be_v present_v not_o according_a to_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o prince_n the_o pope_n brief_n refer_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o index_n to_o the_o council_n be_v read_v also_o this_o index_n have_v be_v make_v in_o rome_n by_o paul_n the_o four_o as_o have_v be_v say_v with_o which_o if_o the_o council_n have_v meddle_v it_o may_v have_v seem_v to_o challenge_v superiority_n above_o the_o pope_n therefore_o they_o think_v fit_a that_o the_o pope_n shall_v voluntary_o give_v leave_n to_o prevent_v that_o prejudice_n the_o mass_n patriarch_n read_v the_o decree_n the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o the_o synod_n index_n the_o decree_n concern_v the_o index_n mean_v to_o restore_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n to_o its_o purity_n and_o correct_v manner_n in_o regard_n the_o number_n of_o pernicious_a and_o suspect_a book_n be_v increase_v because_o the_o censure_n make_v in_o diverse_a province_n and_o rome_n have_v do_v no_o good_a have_v determine_v to_o depute_v some_o father_n to_o consider_v hereof_o and_o to_o relate_v to_o the_o synod_n in_o time_n convenient_a what_o they_o think_v fit_a to_o have_v do_v more_o to_o separate_v the_o cockle_n from_o the_o good_a corn_n to_o remove_v all_o scruple_n out_o of_o man_n mind_n and_o to_o take_v away_o all_o cause_n of_o complaint_n ordain_v that_o this_o shall_v be_v publish_v with_o that_o decree_n that_o if_o any_o have_v interest_n in_o the_o business_n of_o the_o book_n and_o censure_n or_o any_o other_o to_o be_v handle_v in_o council_n he_o may_v know_v and_o be_v assure_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v courteous_o hear_v and_o because_o the_o synod_n do_v hearty_o desire_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n that_o all_o may_v acknowledge_v their_o common_a mother_n it_o do_v invite_v all_o who_o do_v not_o communicate_v with_o she_o to_o reconciliation_n and_o concord_n and_o to_o come_v to_o trent_n where_o they_o shall_v be_v embrace_v with_o all_o office_n of_o charity_n and_o further_o have_v decree_v that_o a_o safe_a conduct_n may_v be_v grant_v in_o a_o general_a congregation_n and_o shall_v be_v of_o the_o same_o force_n and_o strength_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v grant_v in_o public_a session_n the_o decree_n be_v read_v the_o title_n whereof_o be_v of_o the_o holy_a ecumenicall_a general_a question_v the_o title_n of_o the_o council_n be_v question_v synod_n lawful_o assemble_v in_o christ_n the_o archbishop_n of_o granata_n require_v that_o these_o word_n represent_v the_o universal_a church_n shall_v be_v add_v as_o have_v be_v observe_v in_o all_o the_o late_a counsel_n antonius_n perague_n archbishop_n of_o caglieri_n make_v the_o same_o request_n and_o these_o two_o be_v follow_v by_o almost_o all_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n desire_v that_o this_o request_n may_v be_v note_v in_o the_o act_n no_o answer_n be_v make_v but_o for_o conclusion_n the_o next_o session_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v the_o 14_o of_o may._n the_o decree_n be_v print_v not_o only_o because_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n but_o because_o censure_v the_o decree_n be_v censure_v it_o be_v make_v of_o purpose_n to_o be_v publish_v to_o all_o and_o it_o be_v censure_v by_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n it_o be_v demand_v how_o the_o synod_n do_v call_v those_o who_o be_v interest_v in_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o council_n if_o they_o be_v not_o know_v and_o say_v that_o former_o all_o thing_n be_v handle_v beside_o expectation_n and_o who_o can_v prophesy_v what_o the_o legate_n will_v propose_v because_o they_o know_v not_o themselves_o still_o expect_v commission_n from_o rome_n those_o who_o be_v interest_v in_o any_o book_n how_o can_v they_o know_v that_o any_o thing_n will_v be_v speak_v against_o it_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o citation_n and_o incertainty_n of_o the_o cause_n may_v induce_v every_o one_o to_o go_v to_o trent_n because_o every_o one_o have_v interest_n in_o some_o particular_a which_o may_v perhaps_o be_v treat_v on_o it_o be_v conclude_v general_o that_o they_o be_v call_v in_o show_n and_o exclude_v indeed_o notwithstanding_o these_o thing_n which_o they_o can_v not_o praise_v they_o commend_v the_o ingenuous_a confession_n of_o the_o synod_n that_o the_o former_a prohibition_n have_v beget_v scruple_n in_o man_n mind_n and_o give_v cause_n of_o complaint_n in_o germany_n that_o part_n be_v suspect_v where_o the_o synod_n give_v authority_n to_o itself_o to_o give_v a_o safe_a conduct_n in_o a_o general_a congregation_n for_o they_o understand_v not_o any_o difference_n in_o regard_n the_o same_o person_n meet_v in_o both_o assembly_n but_o only_o that_o they_o do_v wear_v mitre_n in_o the_o session_n and_o cap_n in_o the_o congregation_n nor_o why_o if_o the_o safe-conduct_n can_v not_o then_o be_v grant_v they_o can_v not_o make_v a_o session_n express_o for_o it_o in_o sum_n they_o think_v that_o there_o be_v some_o great_a mystery_n cover_v in_o it_o howsoever_o the_o most_o understand_a man_n do_v believe_v that_o the_o synod_n be_v assure_v that_o no_o protestant_n will_v come_v to_o trent_n with_o any_o safe-conduct_n whatsoever_o except_o it_o be_v by_o force_n as_o it_o happen_v in_o the_o year_n 1552._o because_o of_o the_o resolution_n of_o charles_n a_o thing_n which_o can_v no_o more_o be_v put_v in_o practice_n the_o pope_n write_v back_o to_o the_o legate_n that_o the_o heretic_n shall_v not_o be_v invite_v to_o repentance_n with_o promise_n of_o pardon_n because_o it_o have_v be_v do_v by_o julius_n and_o another_o time_n by_o paul_n the_o four_o no_o good_a issue_n come_v of_o it_o among_o the_o heretic_n those_o who_o be_v in_o a_o place_n of_o liberty_n will_v not_o accept_v it_o and_o those_o who_o remain_v where_o the_o inquisition_n have_v power_n if_o they_o fear_v to_o be_v discover_v will_v receive_v the_o pardon_n fained_o to_o secure_v themselves_o of_o that_o legate_n the_o pope_n answer_n to_o the_o legate_n which_o be_v past_a with_o purpose_n to_o do_v worse_o more_v wary_o for_o the_o safe_a conduct_n he_o be_v content_v it_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o all_o who_o be_v not_o under_o the_o inquisition_n but_o so_o as_o that_o the_o exception_n shall_v not_o be_v express_v in_o regard_n that_o when_o julius_n grant_v his_o pardon_n except_o only_o to_o those_o who_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o inquisition_n of_o spain_n and_o portugal_n much_o be_v speak_v against_o it_o and_o it_o pass_v with_o small_a reputation_n as_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o the_o same_o power_n over_o that_o inquisition_n as_o over_o other_o but_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o express_v it_o he_o do_v refer_v it_o to_o the_o synod_n for_o the_o form_n he_o commend_v that_o which_o the_o council_n give_v to_o germany_n in_o the_o year_n 1552_o in_o regard_n that_o be_v see_v already_o and_o that_o so_o many_o protestant_n come_v that_o year_n to_o trent_n upon_o that_o security_n concern_v the_o index_n he_o ordain_v that_o the_o deputy_n shall_v proceed_v until_o a_o occasion_n be_v offer_v to_o make_v a_o public_a decree_n without_o the_o opposition_n of_o any_o prince_n the_o answer_n be_v come_v the_o second_o of_o march_n and_o the_o day_n follow_v congregation_n be_v hold_v to_o resolve_v whether_o the_o general_a pardon_n ought_v to_o be_v publish_v and_o a_o safe_a conduct_n grant_v and_o what_o form_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o and_o the_o four_o day_n after_o long_a disputation_n all_o be_v conclude_v the_o legate_n have_v make_v the_o determination_n fall_v where_o they_o aim_v without_o intere_v the_o pope_n authority_n to_o invite_v the_o heretic_n to_o repentance_n be_v omit_v for_o the_o reason_n allege_v in_o rome_n it_o be_v much_o dispute_v whether_o a_o safe_a conduct_n be_v to_o be_v give_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o french_a english_a and_o scottish_a man_n and_o some_o speak_v of_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o nation_n of_o the_o east_n it_o be_v present_o see_v that_o these_o poor_a man_n afflict_v in_o servitude_n
monarchical_a and_o then_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o power_n or_o jurisdiction_n not_o derive_v from_o he_o but_o receive_v from_o other_o in_o resolve_v the_o contrary_a argument_n he_o discourse_v that_o according_a to_o the_o order_n institute_v by_o christ_n the_o apostle_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n not_o by_o christ_n but_o by_o saint_n peter_n receive_v jurisdiction_n from_o he_o only_o and_o many_o catholic_a doctor_n do_v hold_v that_o this_o be_v observe_v which_o opinion_n be_v very_o probable_a but_o the_o other_o who_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n by_o christ_n do_v add_v that_o his_o divine_a majesty_n in_o so_o do_v do_v prevent_v the_o office_n of_o peter_n by_o do_v for_o that_o one_o time_n that_o which_o belong_v to_o he_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n that_o power_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o receive_v from_o peter_n even_o as_o god_n take_v some_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o moses_n and_o divide_v it_o among_o the_o seventy_o judge_n so_o that_o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o and_o receive_v authority_n from_o peter_n who_o therefore_o do_v remain_v subject_n unto_o he_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o place_n where_o and_o the_o manner_n how_o to_o exercise_v the_o same_o and_o howsoever_o it_o be_v not_o read_v that_o peter_n do_v correct_v they_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o for_o want_v of_o power_n but_o because_o they_o do_v exercise_v their_o charge_n aright_o and_o he_o that_o shall_v read_v the_o renown_a and_o famous_a canon_n ita_fw-la dominus_fw-la will_v assure_v himself_o that_o every_o good_a catholic_a ought_v to_o defend_v that_o the_o bishop_n successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v receive_v all_o from_o peter_n he_o observe_v also_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o only_o because_o they_o be_v in_o their_o place_n as_o one_o bishop_n succee_v another_o not_o because_o they_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o they_o to_o those_o who_o infer_v that_o therefore_o the_o pope_n may_v refuse_v to_o make_v bishop_n and_o so_o himself_o remain_v the_o only_a man_n he_o answer_v it_o be_v god_n ordination_n there_o shall_v be_v many_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n to_o assist_v he_o and_o therefore_o that_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o preserve_v they_o but_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n to_o say_v a_o thing_n be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la or_o that_o it_o be_v ordain_v by_o god_n those_o de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la be_v perpetual_a and_o depend_v on_o god_n alone_o both_o in_o general_a and_o in_o particular_a at_o all_o time_n so_o baptism_n and_o all_o the_o sacrament_n be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la in_o every_o one_o of_o which_o god_n have_v his_o particular_a work_n and_o so_o the_o pope_n be_v from_o god._n for_o when_o one_o pope_n do_v die_v the_o key_n do_v not_o remain_v to_o the_o church_n because_o they_o be_v not_o give_v to_o it_o but_o a_o new_a pope_n be_v create_v god_n do_v immediate_o give_v they_o unto_o he_o now_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o thing_n of_o divine_a ordination_n in_o which_o the_o general_a only_o proceed_v from_o god_n and_o the_o particular_n be_v execute_v by_o man_n so_o saint_n paul_n say_v that_o prince_n and_o temporal_a power_n be_v ordain_v by_o god_n that_o be_v that_o the_o general_a precept_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v prince_n come_v only_o from_o he_o but_o yet_o the_o particular_n be_v make_v by_o the_o civil_a law_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n bishop_n be_v by_o divine_a ordination_n and_o saint_n paul_n say_v they_o be_v place_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n but_o not_o the_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la therefore_o the_o pope_n can_v take_v away_o the_o general_a order_n of_o make_v bishop_n in_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v from_o god_n but_o every_o particular_a bishop_n be_v the_o jure_fw-la canonico_n may_v be_v remoove_v by_o the_o pope_n authority_n to_o the_o opposition_n that_o then_o the_o bishop_n will_v be_v delegati_fw-la and_o not_o ordinarij_fw-la he_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v one_o jurisdiction_n fundamental_a and_o another_o derive_v and_o the_o derive_v be_v either_o delegate_v or_o ordinary_a in_o civil_a commonwealth_n the_o fundamental_a be_v in_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o derive_v in_o all_o the_o magistrate_n neither_o be_v the_o ordinary_n different_a from_o the_o delegate_n because_o they_o receive_v authority_n from_o diverse_a person_n yea_o all_o do_v equal_o derive_v from_o the_o sovereignty_n but_o the_o difference_n stand_v because_o the_o ordinary_n be_v by_o a_o perpetual_a law_n and_o succession_n and_o the_o other_o have_v a_o particular_a authority_n either_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o person_n or_o the_o case_n therefore_o the_o bishop_n be_v ordinary_n because_o they_o be_v make_v by_o the_o pope_n law_n a_o dignity_n of_o perpetual_a succession_n in_o the_o church_n he_o add_v that_o those_o place_n where_o authority_n seem_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n as_o these_o that_o it_o be_v a_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n that_o he_o who_o will_v not_o hear_v it_o shall_v be_v esteem_v a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n be_v all_o understand_v in_o regard_n of_o its_o head_n which_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n can_v err_v because_o he_o can_v and_o so_o he_o that_o be_v separate_v from_o he_o who_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v separate_v also_o from_o the_o church_n to_o those_o who_o say_v the_o council_n can_v not_o have_v authority_n if_o none_o of_o the_o bishop_n have_v it_o he_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v not_o inconvenient_a but_o a_o very_a plain_a and_o necessary_a consequence_n yea_o if_o every_o particular_a bishop_n in_o council_n may_v err_v it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o they_o may_v err_v altogether_o and_o if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n proceed_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o bishop_n it_o can_v never_o be_v call_v general_a because_o the_o number_n of_o the_o assistant_n be_v always_o incomparable_o less_o than_o that_o of_o the_o absent_a he_o council_n he_o proove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o council_n tell_v they_o that_o in_o this_o council_n under_o paul_n the_o three_o principal_a article_n be_v define_v concern_v the_o canonical_a book_n interpretation_n parity_n of_o tradition_n with_o the_o scripture_n by_o a_o number_n of_o slay_v or_o a_o less_o all_o which_o will_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n if_o the_o multitude_n give_v authority_n but_o as_o a_o number_n of_o prelate_n assemble_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o make_v a_o general_a council_n be_v it_o how_o small_a soever_o have_v the_o name_n and_o efficacy_n to_o be_v general_a from_o the_o pope_n only_o so_o also_o it_o have_v its_o authority_n so_o that_o if_o it_o do_v make_v precept_n or_o anathematism_n neither_o of_o they_o be_v of_o force_n but_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o pope_n future_a confirmation_n and_o when_o the_o synod_n say_v that_o it_o be_v assemble_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o mean_v that_o the_o father_n be_v congregat_v according_a to_o the_o pope_n intimation_n to_o handle_v that_o which_o be_v approve_v by_o he_o will_v be_v decree_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n otherwise_o how_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o a_o decree_n be_v make_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o can_v be_v make_v to_o be_v of_o no_o force_n by_o the_o pope_n authority_n or_o have_v need_n of_o great_a confirmation_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o counsel_n be_v they_o never_o so_o frequent_a if_o the_o pope_n be_v present_a he_o only_o do_v decree_n neither_o do_v the_o council_n any_o thing_n but_o approve_v that_o be_v receive_v the_o decree_n and_o therefore_o it_o have_v always_o be_v say_v sacro_fw-la approbante_fw-la concilio_fw-la yea_o even_o in_o resolution_n of_o the_o great_a weight_n as_o be_v the_o disposition_n of_o the_o emperor_n frederic_n the_o second_o in_o the_o general_a council_n of_o lion_n innocentius_n the_o four_o a_o most_o wise_a pope_n refuse_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o synod_n that_o none_o may_v think_v it_o to_o be_v necessary_a and_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o say_v sacro_fw-la praesente_fw-la concilio_fw-la and_o for_o all_o this_o the_o council_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v superfluous_a because_o it_o be_v assemble_v for_o better_a inquisition_n for_o more_o easy_a persuasion_n and_o to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o man_n and_o when_o it_o give_v sentence_n it_o do_v it_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n derive_v from_o god_n and_o for_o these_o reason_n the_o good_a doctor_n have_v subject_v the_o counsel_n authority_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o whole_o depend_v on_o it_o without_o which_o it_o have_v not_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o infallibility_n nor_o power_n to_o bind_v the_o church_n but_o as_o it_o be_v grant_v by_o he_o alone_o to_o
the_o corruption_n of_o the_o clergy_n 527_o a_o tumult_n be_v raise_v in_o bavaria_n for_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o marriage_n of_o priest_n 716_o bessarion_n be_v create_v cardinal_n and_o want_v not_o much_o of_o be_v pope_n 75_o beza_n speak_v in_o the_o colloquy_n of_o poisi_n 452_o 453_o 454._o birague_n the_o french_a ambassador_n come_v to_o trent_n 714_o the_o counsel_n answer_v 718_o he_o part_v from_o trent_n &_o go_v to_o the_o emperor_n his_o negotiation_n 720_o bishop_n of_o bitonto_n make_v a_o foolish_a oration_n when_o the_o council_n be_v open_v 132_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v excommunicate_v in_o rome_n for_o not_o pay_v his_o pensionary_n 153_o bishop_n of_o ficsole_n and_o chiozza_n be_v complain_v of_o to_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o legate_n for_o speak_v free_o in_o council_n 167_o bishop_n of_o vintimiglia_n be_v the_o pope_n secret_a minister_n in_o council_n 517_o bishop_n employ_v in_o the_o council_n by_o card._n simoneta_n to_o jest_v at_o other_o 526_o bishop_n what_o quality_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v 249_o 261._o by_o what_o law_n bishop_n be_v institute_v be_v not_o permit_v to_o be_v dispute_v in_o council_n 589_o whether_o their_o degree_n be_v a_o order_n 591_o how_o they_o be_v superior_a to_o priest_n 595._o 596_o whether_o their_o institution_n be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la or_o pontificio_fw-la 596_o 597_o 598_o 599_o 604_o 636_o 637._o laynez_n general_n of_o the_o jesuite_n spend_v a_o whole_a congregation_n to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la pontificio_fw-la 609_o 610_o the_o french_a prelate_n will_v have_v this_o question_n whole_o omit_v 634_o bishop_n not_o make_v nor_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n 635._o cannon_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n be_v make_v in_o rome_n and_o bring_v to_o trent_n 657_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o institution_n be_v make_v 723_o but_o defer_v for_o fear_n of_o make_v the_o council_n too_o long_o 731_o 732_o a_o question_n be_v discuss_v in_o the_o council_n whether_o the_o most_o worthy_a aught_o to_o be_v elect_v bishop_n 725_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n will_v not_o abandon_v their_o opinion_n that_o the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la 735_o but_o be_v persuade_v to_o be_v quiet_a 737_o bull_n of_o leo_n the_o ten_o against_o luther_n 10_o 11_o a_o bull_n of_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d in_o mantua_n 79_o another_o of_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o trent_n against_o which_o the_o emperor_n except_v 101_o bull_n of_o faculty_n for_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 112_o bull_n for_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o council_n 112_o bull_n of_o the_o translation_n if_o the_o council_n 128_o bull_n of_o the_o legation_n the_o legate_n will_v not_o suffer_v to_o be_v read_v 130_o bull_n of_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o council_n to_o bolonia_n 266_o 267_o 268_o bull_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o the_o council_n to_o trent_n 307_o which_o the_o emperor_n will_v have_v to_o be_v alter_v 307_o 308_o bull_n of_o pius_n 4_o for_o the_o intimation_n of_o the_o council_n in_o trent_n 435_o c._n caictan_n the_o pope_n legate_n in_o what_o sort_n he_o treat_v with_o luther_n 7_o be_v blame_v in_o rome_n for_o use_v he_o base_o 8_o calistini_fw-la in_o bohemia_n 2_o camillus_n oliws_fw-la secretary_n to_o the_o card._n of_o mantua_n be_v in_o disgrace_n with_o the_o pope_n 518_o campegio_n be_v send_v legate_n to_o the_o diet_n in_o noremberg_n 31_o he_o make_v a_o little_a reformation_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o germany_n 32_o which_o be_v receive_v by_o some_o few_o prince_n 33_o be_v make_v legate_n again_o 52_o 53_o be_v send_v into_o england_n about_o the_o divorce_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o recall_v to_o gratify_v the_o emperor_n 68_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o scripture_n 152_o 153_o catherinus_n write_v against_o soto_n concern_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o council_n in_o the_o point_n de_fw-fr natura_fw-la &_o gratia_fw-la 229_o character_n imprint_v in_o the_o collation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n what_o it_o be_v 239_o 240_o it_o be_v imprint_v in_o the_o collation_n of_o priesthood_n 738_o card._n colonna_n be_v cite_v to_o rome_n 38_o sack_v rome_n 41_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o appeal_v to_o a_o council_n 42_o cardinal_n imprison_v mock_v and_o beat_v in_o rome_n 44_o cardinal_n create_v 74_o 272_o 361_o 396_o 825_o cardinal_n be_v not_o contain_v within_o any_o general_a term_n of_o any_o law_n if_o they_o be_v not_o particular_o ●amed_v 262_o card._n poole_n be_v make_v legate_n for_o the_o council_n in_o trent_n 111_o and_o after_o his_o return_n from_o thence_o be_v make_v one_o of_o the_o deputy_n in_o rome_n over_o the_o council_n in_o trent_n 168_o be_v name_v to_o be_v pope_n but_o not_o elect_v for_o suspicion_n of_o lutheranisme_n 298_o be_v make_v legate_n for_o england_n by_o pope_n julius_n the_o three_o 384_o come_n to_o london_n with_o the_o cross_n before_o he_o and_o make_v a_o oration_n in_o the_o parliament_n 385_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o legation_n of_o england_n by_o paul_n the_o 4._o 405_o cardinal_n crescentius_n the_o legate_n in_o council_n ●doteth_v 375_o be_v carry_v to_o verona_n and_o there_o die_v 377_o card._n morone_n be_v imprison_v and_o ready_a to_o be_v sentence_v for_o a_o heretic_n by_o paul_n 4._o 416_o be_v make_v prime_a precedent_n of_o the_o council_n by_o pope_n pius_n 4._o and_o have_v secret_a instruction_n 688._o his_o entry_n into_o trent_n 693_o be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n 694_o his_o public_a negotiation_n with_o the_o emp._n 695_o his_o private_a negotiation_n with_o the_o empe._n 705_o he_o be_v tax_v by_o his_o fellow_n legate_n for_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o he_o 724._o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n speak_v in_o the_o colloquy_n of_o poisi_n 453_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o be_v patriarch_n of_o france_n 603_o enter_v trent_n with_o many_o french_a prelate_n 624_o make_v a_o oration_n in_o council_n 629_o go_v to_o ispruc_n to_o consult_v with_o the_o emperor_n about_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o council_n 664._o 668_o write_v a_o consolatorie_a letter_n to_o his_o mother_n after_o the_o death_n of_o his_o brother_n the_o duke_n of_o guise_n 681_o go_v to_o venice_n to_o put_v away_o grief_n 689_o be_v say_v to_o speak_v in_o council_n like_o a_o lutherane_n 704_o remit_v his_o rigour_n for_o matter_n of_o the_o council_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a change_n in_o france_n 712_o be_v oppose_v by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o otranto_n 719_o resolve_v to_o give_v the_o pope_n all_o manner_n of_o satisfaction_n 733_o be_v complain_v of_o by_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n 743._o 744_o excuse_v his_o change_n of_o mind_n 751_o come_n to_o rome_n where_o he_o be_v lodge_v in_o the_o pope_n palace_n and_o visit_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o person_n 767_o his_o negotiation_n 768_o he_o tax_v the_o french_a ambassador_n for_o protest_v in_o trent_n 778_o return_v to_o trent_n and_o hasten_v the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n 781_o be_v the_o chief_a man_n to_o make_v and_o roar_v out_o the_o acclamation_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n 813_o be_v tax_v in_o france_n at_o his_o return_n 818_o his_o defence_n 821_o cardinal_n of_o ferrara_n be_v send_v legate_n into_o france_n where_o he_o be_v ill_o entertain_v at_o the_o first_o 455_o he_o muke_v acquaintance_n with_o the_o hugonot_n 456_o have_v a_o grant_n to_o exercise_v his_o faculty_n which_o the_o chancellor_n refuse_v to_o subscribe_v 458_o he_o meet_v the_o card_n of_o lorraine_n in_o asti_n of_o piedmont_n to_o persuade_v he_o to_o favour_v the_o pope_n affair_n in_o council_n 700_o but_o can_v effect_v anything_o 711_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n legate_n in_o the_o council_n be_v distaste_v by_o the_o pope_n 507_o be_v oppose_v by_o cardinal_n simoneta_n 513_o the_o dispatch_n be_v not_o address_v to_o he_o 517_o be_v reconcile_v with_o cardinal_n simoneta_n 54_o write_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o can_v dissemble_v no_o long_o 675_o he_o die_v 678_o cardinal_n of_o bourbon_n desire_v a_o dispensation_n to_o marry_v 668_o but_o the_o frenchman_n dare_v not_o propose_v it_o in_o council_n 680_o cardinal_n seripando_n one_o of_o the_o precedent_n die_v 687_o cardinal_n navaggero_n the_o new_a precedent_n enter_v trent_n 699_o cardinal_n chastillion_n call_v himself_o count_n of_o beawois_n quit_v the_o cap_n mock_v the_o pope_n and_o be_v deprive_v by_o he_o 767_o catechism_n be_v handle_v 802_o ceremony_n use_v in_o open_v the_o council_n 130_o charles_n the_o fisth_n emperor_n be_v suspect_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o his_o greatness_n 35_o make_v two_o answer_n to_o the_o two_o brief_n of_o the_o pope_n 39_o write_v to_o the_o cardinal_n 40_o make_v show_v of_o grief_n for_o the_o pope_n imprisonment_n but_o
147_o the_o four_o apr._n 8._o 1546._o 162_o the_o five_o june_n 17._o 1546._o 184_o the_o sixth_o jan._n 13._o 1547._o 223_o the_o seven_o march_v 3._o 1547._o 263_o the_o eight_o march_v 11._o 1547._o 267_o the_o nine_o and_o first_o in_o bolonia_n april_n 21._o 1547_o 270_o the_o ten_o and_o second_o in_o bolonia_n june_n 11._o 1547._o 276_o the_o eleven_o session_n and_o first_o in_o the_o second_o reduction_n in_o trent_n may_v 1._o 1551_o 313_o the_o twelve_o and_o second_o in_o the_o second_o reduction_n in_o trent_n sept._n 1._o 1551._o 317_o the_o thirteen_o session_n oct._n 11._o 1551._o 339_o the_o fourteen_o novemb._n 25._o 1551._o 356_o the_o fifteen_o jan._n 25._o 1552._o 369_o the_o sixteenth_o which_o be_v the_o sixth_o and_o last_o under_o pope_n julius_n the_o three_o april_n 28._o 1552._o 376_o the_o seventeenth_o and_o first_o under_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o feb._n 26._o 1562._o 469_o the_o eighteen_o and_o second_o under_o pius_n the_o four_o feb._n 26._o 1562._o 480_o the_o nineteenth_o may._n 14._o 1562_o 506_o the_o twenty_o june_n 4._o 1562._o 511_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o jul._n 16._o 1562._o 539_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o sept._n 17._o 1562._o 572_o the_o three_o and_o twenty_o jul._n 15._o 1563._o 737_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o novem_n 11._o 1563._o 783_o the_o five_o and_o twenty_o and_o last_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n december_n 3._o and_o 4._o 1563._o 805_o session_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v no_o real_a difference_n from_o a_o general_a congregation_n 662_o silvester_n prierias_fw-la write_v against_o luther_n 6_o simoneta_n make_v a_o faction_n about_o the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n 607_o simony_n be_v discuss_v with_o all_o doubt_n belong_v to_o it_o 398_o 399_o 492_o etc._n etc._n simony_n be_v lay_v to_o the_o charge_n of_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o 628_o smalcalda_n in_o which_o there_o be_v a_o great_a assembly_n of_o the_o protestant_n 77_o soto_n be_v suspect_v to_o be_v a_o lutheran_n 178_o write_v three_o book_n de_fw-fr natura_fw-la &_o gratia_fw-la as_o a_o commentary_n upon_o that_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n and_o be_v oppose_v by_o andreas_n vega._n 216_o 229_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v he_o write_v a_o letter_n to_o the_o pope_n concern_v conciliarie_n matter_n 693_o subscription_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n 813_o swiss_n be_v divide_v in_o religion_n 45_o make_v a_o league_n after_o the_o death_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la 60_o be_v invite_v to_o the_o council_n by_o the_o pope_n 164_o be_v much_o favour_v by_o pope_n julius_n the_o three_o 313_o supplication_n send_v out_o of_o france_n into_o spain_n 447_o suspension_n of_o the_o council_n be_v make_v for_o two_o year_n 376_o 377_o but_o continue_v ten_o year_n 381_o t_o thechel_n a_o dominican_n write_v again_o luther_n 5_o title_n of_o the_o council_n be_v much_o question_v 134_o 141_o 142_o 481._o titular_a bishop_n speak_v against_o and_o defend_v 717_o the_o bishop_n of_o conimbria_n speak_v against_o they_o 735_o tradition_n be_v di●oursed_v on_o 151_o 152_o etc._n etc._n be_v make_v to_o ●e_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o scripture_n 154_o translation_n of_o the_o council_n to_o bolonia_n be_v resolve_v on_o in_o rome_n 259_o and_o execute_v in_o trent_n 266_o 267_o etc._n etc._n the_o discussion_n of_o the_o cause_n thereof_o be_v refer_v to_o certain_a delegate_n in_o rome_n 283_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n what_o it_o be_v 6_o trent_n be_v name_v for_o the_o place_n to_o hold_v the_o council_n in_o but_o the_o protestant_n will_v not_o consent_v 101_o the_o legate_n be_v recall_v from_o trent_n because_o they_o be_v leave_v alone_o 104_o and_o be_v send_v thither_o again_o 111_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v protest_v against_o by_o the_o protestant_n 126_o it_o begin_v the_o 13._o of_o december_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1545_o 129_o 130_o v._n vergerius_n be_v send_v nuncio_n to_o king_n ferdinand_n 52_o be_v make_v nuncio_n in_o the_o place_n of_o hugo_n rangone_n bishop_n of_o rheggio_n 66_o be_v recall_v out_o of_o germany_n 72_o and_o send_v back_o 73_o his_o negotiation_n 74_o return_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o be_v reward_v 78_o go_v to_o the_o colloquy_n in_o worm_n under_o a_o false_a name_n 93_o fly_v to_o the_o council_n for_o succour_n and_o after_o quit_v both_o it_o and_o italy_n 154_o discover_v the_o plot_n of_o the_o romanist_n to_o the_o swiss_n and_o grison_n 345_o write_v against_o the_o bull_n of_o the_o intimation_n of_o the_o council_n 436_o be_v in_o valtellina_n make_v objection_n against_o the_o council_n 743_o vincentia_fw-la be_v choose_v to_o hold_v the_o council_n in_o 84_o three_o legate_n be_v send_v thither_o 85_o the_o council_n be_v defer_v 86_o and_o afterward_o suspend_v during_o pleasure_n 90_o the_o venetian_n will_v not_o suffer_v the_o council_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o vincentia_fw-la 100_o virgin_n marie_n be_v exempt_v from_o sin_n by_o the_o franciscan_n 175_o 180_o how_o she_o come_v to_o be_v worship_v 181_o 182_o unction_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o 350_o 351_o unction_n of_o benefice_n be_v invent_v to_o palliate_v plurality_n 251_o university_n of_o louvain_n &_o collen_n condemn_v luther_n book_n 9_o and_o so_o do_v the_o university_n of_o paris_n 16_o voice_n in_o council_n to_o who_o they_o belong_v by_o right_a 62_o how_o they_o have_v be_v give_v in_o council_n in_o all_o age_n 135_o whether_o they_o may_v be_v give_v by_o proctor_n 707_o vulgar_a tongue_n in_o the_o church_n what_o inconvenience_n it_o bring_v 460_o how_o it_o have_v be_v use_v in_o former_a time_n 577_o 578_o w._n waldense_n or_o albigenses_n in_o the_o alps_n 3_o be_v miserable_o slay_v by_o the_o frenchman_n 119_o obtain_v a_o great_a victory_n against_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n 446_o war_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o french_a king_n 102_o the_o pope_n do_v more_o intend_v the_o war_n against_o the_o protestant_n than_o the_o council_n 144_o rumour_n of_o the_o protestant_n arm_n cause_v the_o counsel_n to_o be_v suspend_v 377_o war_n in_o france_n between_o the_o protestant_n and_o papist_n 647_o wolsey_n be_v delegated_a by_o the_o pope_n to_o hear_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o divorce_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o 68_o work_n of_o good_a man_n how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v value_v 196_o work_n before_o grace_n 198_o work_n after_o grace_n 199_o z._n zvinglius_fw-la in_o zuric_n oppose_v the_o pope_n begin_v from_o the_o abuse_n of_o indulgence_n preach_v by_o friar_n samson_n among_o the_o swiss_n 9_o the_o bishop_n of_o constance_n write_v and_o the_o dominican_n preach_v against_o he_o by_o which_o mean_n he_o be_v the_o more_o stir_v up_o 16_o his_o difference_n with_o luther_n 48_o be_v slay_v in_o battle_n 59_o zuric_n make_v a_o decree_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n 17_o finis_fw-la london_n ¶_o print_a by_o bonham_n norton_n and_o john_n bill_n printer_n to_o the_o king_n most_o excellent_a majesty_n anno_fw-la dom._n m._n dc_o xxix_o
the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n contain_v eight_o book_n in_o which_o beside_o the_o ordinary_a act_n of_o the_o council_n be_v declare_v many_o notable_a occurrence_n which_o happen_v in_o christendom_n during_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o year_n and_o more_o and_o particular_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n hinder_v the_o reformation_n of_o their_o error_n and_o to_o maintain_v their_o greatness_n write_a in_o italian_a by_o pietro_n soave_fw-it polano_n and_o faithful_o translate_v into_o english_a by_o nathanael_n brent_n unto_o this_o second_o edition_n be_v add_v diverse_a observable_a passage_n and_o epistle_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o history_n specify_v in_o the_o next_o page_n diev_n et_fw-fr mon_fw-fr dro●_n london_n print_v by_o bonham_n norton_n and_o john_n bill_n printer_n to_o the_o king_n most_o excellent_a majesty_n m._n dc_o xxii_o the_o appendix_n of_o this_o second_o edition_n contain_v 1_o a_o epistle_n of_o gregory_n the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o maurice_n the_o emperor_n 2_o a_o passage_n of_o the_o history_n of_o fr._n guicciardine_n florentine_n concern_v pope_n alex._n 6._o leave_v out_o of_o his_o three_o book_n in_o the_o print_a copy_n 3_o a_o second_o passage_n of_o the_o same_o author_n contain_v a_o large_a discourse_n of_o the_o mean_n whereby_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n attein_v to_o their_o greatness_n that_o they_o now_o enjoy_v leave_v out_o of_o the_o four_o book_n 4_o 〈◊〉_d three_o passage_n of_o the_o same_o author_n leave_v out_o of_o his_o 10._o book_n 5_o certain_a passage_n out_o of_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o lord_n de_fw-fr lansac_n pibr●●c_n ferrier_n etc._n etc._n take_v forth_o of_o the_o instruction_n and_o missy_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o their_o ambassador_n send_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n publish_v in_o french_a an._n 1608._o 6_o andr._n 〈…〉_o udithiu_n bishop_n of_o quinquecclesiae_fw-la in_o hungary_n his_o testimony_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o maximilian_n 2._o emperor_n 7_o a_o epistle_n ●f_a bishop_n jewel_n unto_o signior_n scipio_n a_o senator_n of_o venice_n touch_v the_o cause_n move_v the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o refuse_v communion_n with_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n now_o first_o publish_v according_a to_o the_o original_a annex_v 8_o last_o the_o foresay_a epistle_n of_o dudithius_n write_v by_o himself_o in_o latin_a to_o his_o most_o sacred_a majesty_n i_o offer_v to_o your_o majesty_n view_n the_o true_a and_o most_o judicious_a ecclesiastical_a history_n that_o either_o modern_a time_n or_o any_o antiquity_n have_v afford_v to_o the_o world_n impair_v i_o confess_v in_o beauty_n as_o be_v transport_v out_o of_o the_o natural_a lustre_n both_o of_o stile_n and_o phrase_n by_o a_o rude_a and_o unskilful_a translator_n but_o nothing_o alter_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o sincerity_n of_o the_o matter_n which_o it_o handle_v the_o author_n a_o stranger_n to_o these_o part_n conversant_a only_a where_o the_o gospel_n can_v be_v true_o preach_v be_v move_v to_o write_v it_o as_o for_o the_o common_a good_a of_o all_o christendom_n so_o particular_o in_o contemplation_n of_o your_o majesty_n service_n for_o as_o you_o hold_v the_o high_a place_n among_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o be_v god_n great_a lieutenant_n under_o the_o whole_a cope_n of_o heaven_n so_o your_o admirable_a perfection_n of_o wisdom_n learning_n justice_n and_o religion_n with_o which_o your_o royal_a breast_n be_v enrich_v beyond_o all_o comparison_n to_o be_v make_v with_o any_o other_o cast_v forth_o their_o bright_a shine_a ray_n into_o all_o country_n and_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n and_o rouse_v up_o the_o endeavour_n of_o the_o worthy_a even_o in_o place_n the_o far_a remote_a to_o labour_v in_o the_o build_n up_o or_o repair_v of_o god_n church_n so_o far_o as_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n under_o which_o they_o live_v and_o the_o safety_n of_o their_o life_n which_o nature_n bind_v they_o to_o preserve_v do_v give_v they_o leave_v in_o which_o number_n be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o present_a treatise_n the_o end_n and_o scope_n whereof_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n by_o discovery_n of_o those_o practice_n which_o for_o many_o year_n have_v be_v conceal_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n the_o advancement_n of_o true_a piety_n and_o religion_n i_o know_v not_o to_o who_o it_o may_v be_v address_v more_o just_o then_o to_o the_o great_a majesty_n upon_o the_o whole_a surface_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o chief_a defender_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n among_o us._n and_o sure_o if_o ever_o any_o book_n except_o only_o the_o book_n of_o god_n do_v deserve_v the_o protection_n of_o so_o excellent_a a_o patron_n it_o be_v this_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n for_o of_o all_o the_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n religion_n be_v of_o the_o great_a consequence_n and_o in_o religion_n ecumenicall_a counsel_n next_o after_o the_o holy_a writ_n have_v ever_o carry_v the_o great_a sway_n which_o be_v true_a and_o guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v be_v cause_n of_o infinite_a blessing_n but_o be_v pretend_v only_o and_o govern_v by_o humane_a policy_n and_o art_n have_v bring_v forth_o as_o many_o mischief_n and_o affliction_n to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o in_o this_o of_o trent_n it_o be_v plain_o discover_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n of_o who_o eight_o live_v and_o die_v during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o synod_n and_o treaty_n thereof_o in_o stead_n of_o be_v christ_n holy_a vicar_n as_o they_o pretend_v have_v be_v the_o great_a and_o most_o pernicious_a quacksalve_a juggler_n that_o ever_o the_o earth_n do_v bear_v it_o will_v be_v infinite_a to_o relate_v the_o stratagem_n they_o use_v to_o divert_v it_o before_o it_o begin_v their_o posting_n to_o and_o fro_o to_o hinder_v the_o propose_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o think_v will_v diminish_v their_o profit_n or_o pull_v down_o their_o pride_n their_o policy_n to_o enthrall_v the_o prelate_n and_o divine_n by_o hope_n and_o fear_n their_o diligence_n in_o send_v their_o adherent_n to_o trent_n and_o so_o by_o procure_v a_o mayor_n part_n of_o voice_n to_o make_v themselves_o the_o absolute_a lord_n of_o all_o the_o determination_n that_o pass_v by_o which_o device_n that_o which_o be_v desire_v by_o godly_a man_n as_o the_o only_a remedy_n against_o all_o the_o error_n in_o manner_n and_o doctrine_n both_o in_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n and_o especial_o against_o the_o great_a enormity_n of_o the_o pope_n themselves_o have_v be_v wrest_v to_o a_o quite_o contrary_a use_n to_o weaken_v the_o lawful_a right_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n to_o pervert_v the_o doctrine_n and_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o to_o lift_v up_o the_o papacy_n to_o a_o unsufferable_a height_n of_o pride_n this_o be_v that_o holy_a and_o great_a synod_n of_o which_o the_o romanist_n do_v boast_v themselves_o so_o much_o and_o indeed_o every_o one_o of_o any_o mean_a capacity_n may_v easy_o know_v that_o many_o controverted_a point_n between_o they_o and_o the_o true_a professor_n necessary_a as_o they_o maintain_v for_o the_o save_n of_o man_n soul_n have_v never_o any_o colourable_a establishment_n but_o this_o which_o insensible_o creep_v in_o by_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o vulgar_a or_o secret_o set_v on_o foot_n by_o those_o that_o be_v ambitious_a and_o covetous_a or_o at_o the_o best_a blind_o zealous_a have_v always_o be_v oppose_v by_o the_o orthodox_n even_o public_o until_o the_o malicious_a industry_n of_o the_o great_a part_n put_v to_o silence_n though_o never_o quite_o overcome_v the_o paucity_n of_o the_o better_a so_o that_o their_o vaunt_a of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o infancy_n of_o we_o be_v vain_a and_o idle_a and_o if_o they_o will_v glory_v as_o usual_o they_o do_v of_o the_o universality_n of_o their_o doctrine_n because_o it_o be_v establish_v forsooth_o by_o the_o holy_a ecumenicall_a council_n of_o trent_n as_o they_o term_v it_o none_o can_v better_o judge_v then_o your_o majesty_n how_o factious_a and_o how_o unlawful_a that_o assembly_n be_v and_o by_o this_o history_n the_o whole_a world_n may_v understand_v the_o weakness_n of_o that_o foundation_n the_o almighty_a bless_v your_o majesty_n with_o length_n of_o day_n strength_n of_o body_n loyalty_n of_o your_o people_n and_o with_o all_o imaginable_a happiness_n in_o your_o most_o royal_a progeny_n and_o in_o sway_v the_o sceptre_n of_o your_o dominion_n your_o sacred_a majesty_n most_o humble_a and_o most_o faithful_o devote_a subject_n nathanael_n brent_n to_o the_o reader_n courteous_a reader_n thou_o shall_v see_v in_o this_o book_n great_a variety_n of_o remarkable_a accident_n then_o before_o the_o read_n of_o it_o thou_o can_v have_v possible_o imagine_v the_o state_n of_o religion_n
quite_o alter_v in_o diverse_a kingdom_n and_o country_n of_o christendom_n the_o grandee_n sometime_o divide_v and_o arm_a one_o against_o another_o sometime_o join_v in_o confederation_n and_o league_n the_o eccleisastic_n oppress_v the_o protestant_n persecute_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v act_v their_o part_n and_o most_o lively_o decipher_v in_o their_o natural_a colour_n if_o learning_n will_v content_v thou_o mark_v the_o disputation_n of_o the_o theologue_n and_o the_o deep_a discourse_n of_o the_o author_n himself_o if_o policy_n will_v please_v thou_o thou_o shall_v find_v it_o in_o the_o consultation_n and_o treaty_n of_o prince_n manage_v with_o admirable_a dexterity_n by_o their_o ambassador_n and_o minister_n and_o general_o no_o delight_n will_v be_v want_v to_o thou_o which_o thy_o curiosity_n can_v desire_v or_o any_o other_o history_n afford_v but_o consider_v above_o all_o in_o what_o a_o strange_a manner_n the_o conciliarie_n act_v of_o this_o assembly_n in_o trent_n be_v carry_v by_o read_v of_o those_o few_o word_n of_o thy_o countryman_n edmond_n campian_n below_o in_o this_o page_n thou_o may_v perceive_v in_o what_o repute_n the_o papalin_n do_v hold_v it_o and_o after_o when_o thou_o have_v read_v the_o book_n thou_o will_v know_v how_o much_o it_o be_v overvalued_n compare_v thy_o judicious_a censure_n with_o his_o that_o be_v partial_a and_o thou_o shall_v find_v they_o to_o agree_v as_o white_a with_o blackness_n darkness_n with_o light_n farewell_n verba_fw-la edmundi_fw-la campiani_n ratione_fw-la quarta_fw-la reddita_fw-la academicis_fw-la tridentina_n synodus_fw-la quo_fw-la magis_fw-la inveterascet_fw-la eo_fw-la magis_fw-la indy_n ebque_fw-la perennius_fw-la efflorescet_fw-la bone_fw-la deus_fw-la quae_fw-la gentium_fw-la varietas_fw-la qui_fw-la delectus_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la qui_fw-la regum_fw-la &_o rerumpublicarum_fw-la splendour_n quae_fw-la medulla_n theologorum_fw-la quae_fw-la sanctitas_fw-la quae_fw-la lachrymae_fw-la quae_fw-la ieiunia_fw-la qui_fw-la flores_fw-la academici_n quae_fw-la linguae_fw-la quanta_fw-la subtilitas_fw-la quantus_fw-la labour_n quam_fw-la infinita_fw-la lectio_fw-la quanta_fw-la virtutum_fw-la &_o studiorum_fw-la divitiae_fw-la augustum_fw-la illud_fw-la sacrarium_fw-la impleverunt_fw-la the_o word_n of_o edmond_n campian_n in_o his_o four_o reason_n give_v to_o the_o university_n the_o synod_n of_o trent_n the_o old_a it_o wax_v the_o more_o it_o will_v flourish_v good_a god_n what_o variety_n of_o nation_n what_o choice_n of_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n what_o splendour_n of_o king_n and_o commonwealth_n what_o marrow_n of_o theologue_n what_o sanctity_n what_o weep_n what_o fast_n what_o academical_a flower_n what_o language_n what_o subtlety_n what_o labour_n what_o infinite_a read_n what_o riches_n of_o virtue_n and_o study_n do_v fill_v up_o that_o majestical_a sacred_a place_n to_o the_o most_o reverend_a father_z in_o god_n my_o singular_a good_a lord_n the_o lord_z archbishop_z of_o canterbury_n his_o grace_n primate_n of_o all_o england_n and_o metropolitan_a and_o one_o of_o his_o majesty_n most_o honourable_a privy_a council_n most_o reverend_a in_o christ_n it_o may_v seem_v strange_a and_o i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v without_o example_n that_o of_o one_o council_n only_o so_o large_a a_o history_n shall_v be_v write_v and_o so_o full_a of_o all_o variety_n of_o matter_n for_o in_o those_o of_o former_a age_n in_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v real_o and_o effectual_o assist_v the_o father_n howsoever_o more_o prelate_n and_o divine_n be_v assemble_v from_o place_n more_o remote_a and_o the_o action_n guide_v by_o the_o great_a prince_n of_o all_o those_o time_n yet_o nothing_o be_v attempt_v to_o increase_v or_o maintain_v the_o heresy_n and_o abuse_n that_o reign_v then_o nor_o be_v any_o thing_n remarkable_a but_o the_o very_a doctrine_n and_o decree_n themselves_o but_o after_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n scorn_v to_o be_v minister_n and_o servant_n make_v themselves_o master_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o practice_n and_o invention_n of_o worldly_a man_n chase_v away_o the_o heavenly_a inspiration_n of_o the_o bless_a spirit_n and_o great_a confusion_n and_o trouble_n do_v arise_v in_o handle_v divine_a mystery_n than_o do_v happen_v at_o any_o other_o time_n in_o negotiate_v the_o affair_n of_o kingdom_n and_o of_o commonwealth_n this_o have_v minister_v a_o whole_a ocean_n of_o occurrence_n and_o afford_v a_o most_o copious_a subject_n to_o this_o present_a treatise_n and_o so_o irresistible_a be_v the_o force_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o divine_a providence_n so_o great_a that_o howsoever_o the_o romanist_n have_v use_v all_o possible_a diligence_n to_o hinder_v the_o find_v out_o of_o their_o unlawful_a proceed_n in_o this_o council_n by_o suppress_v all_o public_a writing_n and_o monument_n by_o which_o their_o treachery_n and_o abuse_n may_v be_v discover_v more_o plain_o to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n the_o writer_n of_o this_o history_n a_o man_n of_o admirable_a learning_n exquisite_a judgement_n indefatigable_a industry_n and_o integrity_n scarce_o to_o be_v match_v have_v be_v raise_v up_o by_o god_n who_o out_o of_o the_o diaries_n memorial_n register_n and_o other_o writing_n make_v and_o preserve_v by_o the_o prelate_n and_o divine_n themselves_n and_o by_o the_o ambassador_n of_o prince_n and_o republic_n who_o be_v assistant_n herein_o which_o be_v the_o most_o infallible_a ground_n that_o any_o writer_n can_v have_v have_v reveal_v a_o infinite_a of_o intolerable_a abuse_n and_o as_o the_o proverb_n say_v cornicum_fw-la oculos_fw-la confixit_fw-la this_o book_n i_o have_v translate_v out_o of_o italian_a into_o our_o vulgar_a language_n presume_v to_o commend_v it_o to_o the_o royal_a protection_n of_o his_o sacred_a majesty_n for_o who_o sake_n as_o some_o reason_n induce_v i_o to_o believe_v it_o be_v principal_o compose_v and_o because_o i_o undertake_v this_o work_n at_o your_o grace_n command_n who_o have_v be_v the_o chief_a cause_n why_o the_o original_a cross_v the_o sea_n before_o the_o just_a nativity_n of_o it_o and_o see_v the_o first_o light_n within_o his_o majesty_n dominion_n as_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o high_a place_n you_o most_o deserve_o bear_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n i_o think_v it_o my_o duty_n to_o crave_v your_o favour_n likewise_o that_o as_o the_o birth_n of_o it_o have_v be_v happy_a by_o your_o grace_n mean_n so_o the_o growth_n may_v according_o proceed_v and_o the_o fruit_n of_o both_o which_o be_v to_o remove_v a_o erroneous_a opinion_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o this_o pretend_a council_n may_v constant_o endure_v until_o the_o world_n end_n in_o publish_v hereof_o if_o my_o pen_n have_v not_o merit_v such_o praise_n as_o other_o might_n yet_o my_o desire_n to_o benefit_n god_n church_n have_v not_o be_v want_v and_o my_o zeal_n to_o serve_v your_o grace_n in_o whatsoever_o i_o be_o able_a shall_v never_o yield_v to_o any_o unto_o who_o i_o wish_v for_o the_o public_a benefit_n of_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n and_o for_o your_o own_o particular_a contentment_n a_o perfect_a accomplishment_n of_o all_o your_o pious_a and_o honourable_a design_n your_o grace_n most_o oblige_v to_o do_v you_o service_n nathanael_n brent_n the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n my_o purpose_n king_n 1500_o pope_n alexander_z 6_o emperor_n maximllian_n i._o henry_n 7._o king_n of_o england_n lewis_n 12._o french_a king_n be_v to_o write_v the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n author_n the_o purpose_n of_o the_o author_n of_o trent_n for_o though_o many_o famous_a historian_n of_o our_o age_n have_v make_v mention_n in_o their_o writing_n of_o some_o particular_a accident_n that_o happen_v therein_o and_o john_n sleidam_n a_o most_o diligent_a author_n have_v relate_v with_o exquisite_a industry_n the_o cause_n that_o go_v before_o notwithstanding_o all_o these_o thing_n put_v together_o will_v not_o suffice_v for_o a_o entire_a narration_n for_o myself_o so_o soon_o as_o i_o have_v understand_v matter_n the_o mean_n he_o use_v for_o collection_n of_o his_o matter_n of_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o world_n i_o become_v exceed_v curious_a to_o know_v the_o whole_a proceed_n thereof_o and_o after_o i_o have_v diligent_o read_v whatsoever_o i_o find_v write_v and_o the_o public_a instruction_n whether_o print_v or_o diwlge_v by_o pen_n i_o betake_v myself_o without_o spare_v either_o pain_n or_o care_n to_o search_v in_o the_o remainder_n of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o other_o who_o be_v present_a in_o the_o council_n the_o record_n which_o they_o leave_v behind_o they_o and_o the_o suffrage_n or_o opinion_n deliver_v in_o public_a preserve_v by_o the_o author_n themselves_o or_o by_o other_o and_o the_o letter_n of_o advice_n write_v from_o that_o city_n whereby_o i_o have_v have_v the_o favour_n to_o see_v even_o a_o whole_a register_n of_o note_n and_o letter_n of_o those_o person_n who_o have_v a_o great_a part_n
sin_n of_o the_o communion_n of_o indulgence_n of_o excommunication_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n of_o good_a work_n of_o freewill_n of_o purgatory_n &_o of_o poverty_n all_o which_o he_o say_v be_v respective_o pestiferous_a pernicious_a scandalous_a offensive_a to_o pious_a ear_n contrary_a to_o charity_n contrary_a to_o the_o reverence_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n contrary_a to_o obedience_n which_o be_v the_o sinew_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n wherefore_o be_v willing_a to_o proceed_v to_o sentence_n he_o with_o the_o cardinal_n genetal_n of_o the_o regular_a order_n with_o other_o divine_n and_o doctor_n both_o of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o law_n have_v make_v diligent_a examination_n of_o they_o therefore_o he_o condemn_v and_o reject_v they_o respective_o as_o heretical_a scandalous_a false_a offensive_a to_o pious_a ear_n deceitful_a to_o godly_a mind_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_a truth_n he_o prohibit_v upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n and_o infinite_a punishment_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v dare_v to_o keep_v they_o defend_v they_o preach_v they_o or_o favour_v they_o and_o because_o the_o same_o assertion_n be_v find_v in_o the_o book_n of_o martin_n therefore_o he_o condemn_v they_o command_v fire_n luther_n book_n be_v condemn_v to_o the_o fire_n under_o the_o same_o pain_n that_o none_o may_v read_v or_o keep_v they_o but_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v burn_v as_o well_o those_o which_o do_v contain_v the_o foresay_a proposition_n as_o all_o the_o rest_n concern_v the_o person_n of_o martin_n himself_o he_o say_v he_o follower_n the_o pope_n give_v a_o admonition_n to_o luther_n and_o his_o follower_n have_v many_o time_n admonish_v cite_v and_o call_v he_o with_o promise_n of_o safe_a conduct_n and_o provision_n for_o his_o journey_n that_o if_o he_o have_v come_v he_o will_v not_o have_v find_v so_o many_o error_n in_o the_o court_n as_o he_o say_v and_o that_o himself_o the_o pope_n will_v have_v teach_v he_o that_o the_o pope_n his_o predecessor_n have_v never_o err_v in_o their_o constitution_n but_o because_o he_o have_v endure_v the_o censure_n for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o whole_a year_n and_o have_v dare_v to_o appeal_v unto_o a_o future_a council_n a_o thing_n prohibit_v by_o pius_n and_o julius_n the_o second_o under_o the_o punishment_n due_a to_o heretic_n he_o can_v proceed_v to_o condemnation_n without_o any_o more_o ado_n notwithstanding_o forget_v these_o injury_n he_o admonish_v the_o say_a martin_n and_o his_o protector_n to_o change_v their_o opinion_n cease_v to_o preach_v and_o in_o the_o term_n of_o 60._o day_n upon_o the_o same_o pain_n to_o revoke_v all_o the_o foresay_a error_n and_o burn_v the_o book_n which_o in_o case_n they_o do_v not_o he_o declare_v they_o notorious_a and_o obstinate_a heretic_n after_o he_o command_v all_o under_o the_o same_o pain_n that_o they_o keep_v not_o any_o book_n of_o the_o same_o martin_n though_o it_o contain_v not_o the_o like_a error_n then_o ordain_v that_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o shun_v as_o well_v he_o as_o his_o favourer_n yea_o command_v every_o one_o to_o apprehend_v they_o and_o bring_v they_o personal_o before_o he_o or_o at_o least_o chase_v they_o out_o of_o their_o land_n and_o country_n he_o interdict_v all_o place_n whither_o they_o shall_v go_v command_v that_o they_o be_v every_o where_o make_v know_v and_o that_o his_o bull_n ought_v to_o be_v read_v in_o every_o place_n excommunicate_v whosoever_o shall_v hinder_v the_o publication_n thereof_o he_o determine_v that_o the_o exemplification_n ought_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o order_v that_o his_o bull_n be_v publish_v in_o rome_n brandeburg_n misna_n and_o mansperg_n martin_n luther_n receive_v news_n of_o the_o condemnation_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o appeal_v the_o pope_n admonition_n cruse_v luther_n to_o make_v a_o solemn_a appeal_v book_n set_v forth_o a_o writing_n repeat_v the_o appeal_v make_v to_o the_o council_n and_o make_v replication_n thereof_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n furthermore_o for_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v proceed_v against_o a_o man_n not_o call_v nor_o convince_a nor_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o doctrine_n hear_v prefer_v his_o own_o opinion_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o leave_v no_o place_n for_o the_o council_n he_o offer_v to_o demonstrate_v all_o these_o thing_n pray_v the_o emperor_n and_o all_o magistrate_n to_o accept_v this_o his_o appeal_v for_o defence_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n think_v that_o this_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n bind_v not_o any_o till_o the_o cause_n be_v lawful_o discuss_v in_o a_o synod_n but_o man_n of_o understanding_n see_v the_o bull_n of_o leo_n marvel_v at_o it_o for_o many_o cause_n first_o concern_v the_o form_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v proceed_v to_o a_o censure_v the_o bull_n of_o leo_n censure_v declaration_n with_o clause_n of_o the_o palace_n in_o a_o matter_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v handle_v with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o especial_o use_v period_n so_o intricate_a and_o so_o long_o and_o prolix_a that_o it_o be_v scarce_o possible_a to_o draw_v any_o sense_n from_o they_o as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v to_o give_v sentence_n in_o a_o feodatary_a cause_n and_o it_o be_v particular_o note_v that_o one_o clause_n which_o say_v inhibentes_fw-la omnibus_fw-la ne_fw-la praefatos_fw-la errores_fw-la asserere_fw-la praesumant_fw-la be_v so_o draw_v out_o in_o length_n with_o so_o many_o inlargement_n and_o restriction_n that_o between_o inhibentes_fw-la and_o praesumant_fw-la there_o be_v place_v more_o than_o four_o hundred_o word_n other_o pass_v on_o a_o little_a further_o consider_v that_o to_o have_v propose_v and_o condemn_v as_o heretical_a scandalous_a false_a offensive_a to_o pious_a ear_n and_o deceitful_a to_o simple_a mind_n 42._o proposition_n without_o declare_v which_o of_o they_o be_v heretical_a which_o scandalous_a which_o false_a but_o only_o with_o a_o word_n respective_o attribute_v to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o a_o uncertain_a quality_n cause_v a_o great_a doubt_n than_o be_v before_o which_o be_v not_o to_o define_v the_o cause_n but_o to_o make_v it_o more_o controversed_a and_o to_o show_v more_o plain_o that_o another_o authority_n and_o wisdom_n be_v necessary_a to_o determine_v it_o some_o also_o be_v fill_v with_o admiration_n for_o that_o it_o be_v say_v that_o among_o the_o 41._o proposition_n there_o be_v error_n of_o the_o grecian_n condemn_v long_a ago_o other_o think_v it_o a_o strange_a thing_n that_o so_o many_o proposition_n in_o diverse_a point_n of_o faith_n shall_v be_v decide_v in_o rome_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o courtier_n only_o without_o participate_v they_o to_o other_o bishop_n academy_n and_o learned_a person_n of_o europe_n but_o the_o university_n of_o louvain_n and_o collen_n be_v please_v that_o there_o be_v a_o colour_n give_v to_o their_o sentence_n by_o the_o pope_n edict_n public_o burn_v the_o book_n of_o luther_n which_o give_v cause_n that_o he_o also_o in_o wittenberg_n all_o that_o school_n be_v wittenberg_n the_o pope_n bull_n and_o the_o decretal_n burn_v in_o wittenberg_n assemble_v judicial_o and_o public_o make_v to_o be_v burn_v not_o only_o the_o bull_n of_o leo_n but_o together_o also_o the_o pope_n decretal_n and_o after_o give_v a_o account_n to_o the_o world_n of_o that_o action_n in_o a_o long_a manifest_a publish_v in_o writing_n note_v cause_n 521._o leo_n 10._o charles_n 5._o henry_n 8._o francis_z 1_o a_o council_n be_v think_v to_o be_v necessary_a for_o two_o cause_n the_o papacy_n in_o tyranny_n of_o the_o church_n perverseness_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o usurpation_n of_o the_o power_n of_o lawful_a magistrate_n but_o aswell_o for_o luther_n appeal_n as_o for_o these_o and_o other_o consideration_n every_o one_o become_v of_o opinion_n that_o a_o lawful_a council_n be_v necessary_a by_o which_o not_o only_o the_o controversy_n may_v be_v decide_v but_o the_o abuse_n also_o long_o since_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n may_v be_v redress_v and_o always_o the_o necessity_n hereof_o appear_v the_o more_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o the_o contention_n increase_v writing_n be_v set_v forth_o continual_o both_o by_o the_o one_o part_n and_o the_o other_o for_o martin_n fail_v not_o to_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n by_o diverse_a writing_n and_o according_o as_o he_o study_v he_o discover_v more_o light_n ever_o pass_v some_o step_n further_o forward_o and_o find_v article_n of_o which_o in_o the_o beginning_n he_o have_v not_o think_v which_o he_o say_v he_o do_v for_o the_o zeal_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n but_o he_o be_v constrain_v also_o by_o necessity_n for_o the_o romanist_n have_v labour_v effectual_o in_o collen_n with_o the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n by_o the_o mediation_n of_o hierom_n aleander_n that_o he_o will_v deliver_v martin_n
abuse_n whereof_o if_o they_o be_v not_o amend_v and_o the_o grievance_n remove_v and_o some_o article_n reform_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o make_v peace_n between_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n and_o secular_o and_o to_o extirpate_v the_o present_a tumult_n and_o because_o germany_n have_v consent_v to_o the_o payment_n of_o annates_fw-la upon_o condition_n they_o shall_v be_v spend_v in_o the_o war_n against_o the_o turk_n they_o be_v pay_v so_o many_o year_n and_o never_o convert_v to_o that_o use_n they_o desire_v the_o pope_n that_o from_o henceforth_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n may_v not_o be_v trouble_v to_o exact_v they_o but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o exchequer_n of_o the_o empire_n for_o the_o expense_n of_o that_o war_n and_o whereas_o his_o holiness_n demand_v counsel_n of_o the_o mean_n by_o the_o which_o he_o may_v oppose_v himself_o to_o so_o great_a inconvenience_n they_o answer_v that_o if_o the_o treaty_n be_v not_o of_o luther_n only_o but_o of_o root_n out_o altogether_o many_o error_n and_o vice_n which_o by_o long_a custom_n and_o for_o diverse_a respect_n germany_n the_o council_n be_v demand_v in_o the_o diet_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o some_o place_n of_o germany_n have_v take_v deep_a root_n by_o some_o ignorant_o by_o other_o malicious_o defend_v they_o deem_v no_o remedy_n more_o commodious_a effectual_a and_o opportune_a then_o if_o his_o holiness_n by_o the_o emperor_n consent_n will_v call_v a_o godly_a free_a and_o christian_a council_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v possible_a in_o some_o convenient_a place_n in_o germany_n that_o be_v in_o argentine_n in_o mentz_n collen_n or_o metz_n not_o defer_v the_o convocation_n thereof_o above_o a_o year_n grant_v power_n to_o every_o one_o as_o well_o ecclesiastical_a as_o secular_a to_o speak_v and_o give_v counsel_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o salvation_n of_o soul_n any_o oath_n or_o obligation_n to_o the_o contrary_a notwithstanding_o which_o they_o think_v that_o his_o holiness_n ought_v speedy_o to_o execute_v and_o be_v desirous_a to_o make_v for_o the_o interim_n the_o best_a provision_n they_o be_v able_a they_o be_v resolve_v to_o treat_v with_o the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n that_o the_o lutheran_n shall_v neither_o write_v not_o print_v any_o more_o &_o that_o the_o preacher_n throughout_o all_o germany_n shall_v be_v silent_a in_o those_o thing_n that_o may_v cause_v popular_a tumult_n &_o shall_v preach_v the_o holy_a gospel_n sincere_o and_o pure_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n approve_v by_o the_o church_n not_o move_v disputation_n but_o reserve_v all_o controversy_n to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v depute_v godly_a and_o learned_a man_n to_o be_v superintendent_o over_o the_o preacher_n to_o inform_v &_o correct_v they_o yet_o so_o as_o that_o no_o suspicion_n may_v be_v give_v that_o it_o be_v do_v to_o hinder_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o hereafter_o no_o new_a thing_n shall_v be_v print_v before_o it_o be_v see_v &_o allow_v by_o honest_a &_o learned_a man_n hope_v by_o this_o mean_n to_o provide_v against_o the_o tumult_n if_o his_o holiness_n will_v take_v order_n against_o the_o grievance_n and_o ordain_v a_o free_a and_o christian_a council_n not_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o tumult_n will_v so_o be_v quiet_v and_o the_o great_a part_n reduce_v to_o tranquillity_n for_o undoubted_o all_o honest_a man_n will_v expect_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n when_o they_o see_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v quick_o concern_v marry_v priest_n and_o religious_a man_n who_o return_v to_o the_o world_n they_o think_v it_o sufficient_a if_o the_o ordinary_n do_v impose_v upon_o they_o canonical_a punishment_n because_o the_o civil_a law_n have_v make_v no_o provision_n against_o they_o but_o in_o case_n they_o commit_v any_o wickedness_n that_o the_o prince_n or_o magistrate_n in_o who_o territory_n they_o shall_v offend_v aught_o to_o give_v they_o their_o due_a chastisement_n 62_o the_o nuncio_n be_v not_o satisfy_v with_o this_o answer_n and_o resolve_v to_o reply_v 〈…〉_o the_o reply_n of_o the_o nuncio_n to_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o di_fw-it 〈…〉_o and_o first_o for_o the_o cause_n why_o the_o pope_n sentence_n and_o the_o emperor_n edict_n against_o luther_n be_v not_o execute_v he_o say_v that_o the_o reason_n allege_v do_v not_o satisfy_v which_o be_v that_o they_o refrain_v to_o do_v it_o to_o avoid_v scandal_n for_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a to_o tolerate_v a_o evil_a that_o good_a may_v come_v thereby_o and_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o esteem_v more_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n then_o worldly_a tranquillity_n he_o add_v that_o luther_n follower_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v excuse_v by_o the_o scandal_n and_o grievance_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n for_o in_o case_n they_o be_v true_a yet_o ought_v they_o not_o to_o forsake_v the_o catholic_a unity_n but_o rather_o support_v whatsoever_o be_v amiss_o with_o all_o patience_n whereupon_o he_o entreat_v they_o to_o execute_v the_o sentence_n and_o edict_n before_o the_o diet_n end_v and_o if_o germany_n be_v any_o way_n burden_a by_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n the_o apostolical_a sea_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o ease_v it_o and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n between_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n and_o secular_a prince_n the_o pope_n be_v willing_a to_o compose_v and_o extinguish_v they_o concern_v the_o annates_fw-la than_o he_o say_v nothing_o for_o that_o his_o holiness_n will_v answer_v they_o in_o time_n convenient_a but_o to_o their_o demand_n of_o a_o council_n he_o reply_v that_o his_o hope_n be_v that_o it_o will_v not_o displease_v his_o holiness_n if_o they_o have_v demand_v it_o in_o more_o fit_a term_n and_o therefore_o beseech_v they_o to_o take_v away_o all_o those_o word_n that_o may_v give_v he_o any_o umbrage_n as_o those_o that_o the_o council_n may_v be_v call_v by_o the_o emperor_n consent_n and_o those_o other_o that_o the_o council_n may_v be_v celebrate_v rather_o in_o one_o city_n then_o another_o for_o if_o they_o be_v not_o take_v away_o it_o seem_v they_o will_v bind_v his_o holiness_n hand_n a_o thing_n which_o can_v not_o produce_v any_o good_a effect_n for_o the_o preacher_n he_o entreat_v they_o that_o the_o pope_n decree_n may_v be_v observe_v that_o thence_o forward_o none_o may_v preach_v before_o his_o doctrine_n be_v examine_v by_o the_o bishop_n for_o the_o printer_n and_o diwlger_n of_o book_n he_o reply_v that_o the_o answer_v no_o way_n please_v he_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o execute_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n to_o burn_v the_o book_n and_o punish_v the_o diwlger_n earnest_o advertise_v they_o that_o all_o consist_v in_o this_o and_o concern_v book_n to_o be_v print_v hereafter_o that_o the_o late_a lateran_n council_n ought_v to_o be_v observe_v but_o for_o the_o marry_a priest_n the_o answer_n will_v not_o have_v displease_v he_o have_v it_o not_o have_v a_o sting_n in_o the_o tail_n while_o it_o be_v say_v that_o if_o they_o shall_v do_v any_o wicked_a thing_n they_o shall_v be_v punish_v by_o the_o prince_n or_o magistrate_n for_o this_o will_v be_v against_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o sickle_n will_v be_v put_v into_o another_o man_n field_n and_o those_o man_n will_v be_v censure_v by_o the_o world_n who_o be_v reserve_v unto_o christ_n for_o prince_n shall_v not_o presume_v to_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v devolue_v to_o their_o jurisdiction_n by_o their_o apostasy_n nor_o that_o they_o can_v be_v punish_v by_o they_o for_o their_o other_o offence_n in_o regard_n the_o character_n remain_v in_o they_o and_o the_o order_n they_o be_v ever_o under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o can_v prince_n do_v more_o than_o delate_v they_o to_o their_o bishop_n and_o superior_n that_o may_v chastise_v they_o in_o the_o end_n he_o desire_v they_o to_o consider_v more_o mature_o upon_o the_o foresay_a thing_n and_o to_o give_v a_o better_a answer_n more_o plain_a more_o sound_a and_o better_o consult_v of_o 63_o the_o reply_n of_o the_o nuncio_n be_v not_o well_o take_v in_o the_o diet_n and_o it_o be_v common_o speak_v among_o those_o prince_n that_o he_o have_v a_o measure_n of_o good_a and_o prince_n be_v not_o well_o t●ken_v by_o the_o prince_n evil_a only_o by_o relation_n unto_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o court_n and_o not_o to_o the_o necessity_n of_o germany_n and_o that_o the_o conservation_n of_o the_o catholic_a amity_n ought_v rather_o to_o incite_v to_o do_v the_o good_a that_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v execute_v then_o to_o support_v the_o evil_n which_o be_v hard_o to_o be_v endure_v and_o yet_o the_o nuncio_n desire_v that_o germany_n will_v support_v with_o all_o patience_n the_o oppression_n lay_v upon_o it_o by_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v not_o
thing_n else_o be_v treat_v of_o but_o the_o pope_n authority_n but_o that_o be_v call_v into_o question_n that_o nothing_o be_v more_o dangerous_a for_o as_o in_o former_a time_n the_o pope_n strength_n consist_v in_o have_v recourse_n to_o counsel_n so_o now_o the_o security_n of_o the_o popedom_n consist_v in_o decline_v and_o avoid_v they_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o leo_n have_v condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o luther_n the_o same_o matter_n can_v not_o be_v handle_v or_o examine_v in_o a_o council_n without_o doubt_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n 80_o the_o emperor_n have_v receive_v the_o decree_n of_o noremberg_n be_v much_o move_v at_o it_o think_v that_o to_o treat_v and_o give_v so_o resolute_a a_o answer_n to_o a_o strange_a noremberg_n the_o emperor_n be_v distaste_v with_o the_o decree_n of_o noremberg_n prince_n without_o his_o knowledge_n in_o so_o important_a a_o matter_n be_v but_o small_a reputation_n to_o his_o imperial_a majesty_n neither_o do_v the_o rigour_n of_o the_o decree_n please_v he_o foresee_v the_o pope_n displeasure_n who_o he_o desire_v to_o keep_v love_v 1_o 1525_o clement_n 7._o charles_n 5._o henry_n 8._o francis_z 1_o and_o well_o affect_v towards_o he_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o war_n which_o his_o captain_n then_o make_v with_o the_o frenchman_n wherefore_o he_o write_v back_o to_o the_o prince_n in_o germany_n complain_v that_o himself_o have_v condemn_v all_o the_o book_n of_o luther_n the_o diet_n restrain_v themselves_o only_o to_o those_o that_o be_v contumelious_a but_o he_o reprehend_v they_o more_o severe_o that_o they_o have_v decree_v the_o celebration_n of_o a_o council_n in_o germany_n and_o desire_v the_o legate_n to_o treat_v thereof_o with_o prince_n he_o wrt_v to_o the_o prince_n the_o pope_n as_o if_o this_o do_v not_o more_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o he_o then_o unto_o they_o who_o if_o they_o think_v that_o a_o council_n will_v be_v so_o commodious_a for_o germany_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o he_o to_o obtain_v it_o of_o the_o pope_n howsoever_o he_o know_v also_o that_o this_o will_v be_v profitable_a for_o that_o country_n be_v resolute_a it_o shall_v be_v celebrate_v yet_o in_o time_n and_o place_n when_o and_o where_o himself_o can_v be_v personal_o present_a but_o touch_v a_o new_a assembly_n at_o spira_n which_o they_o have_v ordain_v to_o order_v their_o matter_n of_o religion_n until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n he_o say_v that_o by_o no_o mean_a he_o will_v yield_v unto_o it_o yea_o he_o command_v they_o shall_v be_v careful_a to_o obey_v the_o edict_n of_o worm_n worm_n and_o command_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o edict_n of_o worm_n and_o that_o they_o handle_v no_o point_n of_o religion_n until_o a_o council_n be_v call_v by_o the_o pope_n order_n and_o he_o the_o emperor_n letter_n more_o imperious_a than_o germany_n be_v use_v to_o receive_v from_o his_o predecessor_n move_v very_o dangerous_a humour_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o many_o prince_n which_o float_v up_o and_o down_o may_v easy_o have_v come_v to_o a_o troublesome_a conclusion_n 81_o but_o the_o move_n be_v soon_o stop_v and_o the_o year_n follow_v 1525._o have_v 1525_o 1525_o no_o negotiation_n in_o this_o matter_n for_o the_o boar_n in_o germany_n rebel_v against_o the_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n and_o every_o one_o be_v busy_v with_o the_o war_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o in_o italy_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n succeed_v the_o battle_n of_o pavia_n francis_n the_o french_a king_n be_v take_v prisoner_n in_o the_o battle_n at_o pavia_n pavia_n and_o the_o imprisonment_n of_o francis_n the_o french_a king_n which_o so_o li●ted_v up_o the_o emperor_n mind_n that_o he_o think_v he_o have_v all_o the_o world_n in_o his_o power_n but_o afterward_o the_o league_n of_o many_o prince_n against_o he_o which_o be_v treat_v of_o and_o the_o negotiation_n of_o the_o king_n liberty_n give_v he_o business_n enough_o the_o pope_n also_o because_o italy_n be_v without_o defence_n in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o emperor_n emperor_n the_o pope_n suspect_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o emperor_n minister_n think_v of_o his_o own_o case_n and_o how_o he_o may_v be_v join_v with_o other_o who_o be_v able_a to_o defend_v he_o against_o the_o emperor_n from_o who_o his_o mind_n be_v alienate_v see_v he_o be_v become_v so_o potent_a that_o the_o popedom_n remain_v at_o his_o discretion_n 82_o in_o the_o year_n 1526_o they_o return_v to_o the_o same_o treaty_n in_o germany_n and_o italy_n in_o germany_n all_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v assemble_v at_o the_o diet_n in_o spira_n 1526_o 1526_o in_o the_o end_n of_o june_n it_o be_v consult_v of_o by_o special_a order_n from_o the_o emperor_n how_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v spira_n the_o diet_n of_o spira_n preserve_v and_o the_o transgressor_n punish_v the_o opinion_n be_v so_o various_a that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o conclude_v any_o thing_n those_o that_o represent_v the_o emperor_n person_n 〈◊〉_d cause_v the_o imperial_a letter_n to_o be_v read_v where_o charles_n say_v that_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o pass_v into_o italy_n and_o to_o rome_n for_o the_o crown_n and_o to_o treat_v with_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o call_n of_o a_o council_n wherefore_o he_o command_v that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v ordain_v in_o the_o diet_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n ceremony_n council_n the_o emperor_n promise_v to_o procure_v a_o council_n and_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o the_o form_n of_o the_o edict_n of_o worm_n shall_v be_v observe_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v patient_o bear_v that_o small_a delay_n until_o he_o have_v negotiate_v with_o the_o pope_n the_o celebration_n of_o a_o council_n which_o shall_v short_o be_v forby_n treat_v of_o matter_n of_o religion_n execute_v 1526_o clement_n 7._o charles_n 5._o henry_n 8._o francis_z 1_o why_o the_o edict_n of_o worm_n can_v not_o be_v execute_v in_o a_o diet_n rather_o hurt_n arise_v then_o good_a 83_o the_o city_n for_o the_o most_o part_n answer_v that_o their_o desire_n be_v to_o gratify_v and_o obey_v the_o emperor_n but_o that_o they_o see_v not_o the_o mean_n how_o to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o command_v in_o his_o letter_n because_o the_o controversy_n be_v increase_v and_o do_v increase_v still_o particular_o concern_v the_o ceremony_n and_o rite_n and_o if_o for_o the_o time_n past_o the_o edict_n of_o worm_n can_v not_o be_v observe_v for_o fear_n of_o sedition_n the_o difficulty_n be_v then_o great_a as_o be_v declare_v to_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o if_o the_o emperor_n be_v present_a and_o inform_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o business_n he_o will_v be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n concern_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o majesty_n for_o the_o celebration_n of_o a_o council_n every_o one_o say_v he_o may_v have_v effect_v it_o when_o he_o write_v the_o letter_n because_o he_o be_v then_o in_o amity_n with_o the_o pope_n but_o afterward_o there_o be_v distaste_n between_o they_o and_o the_o pope_n have_v take_v arm_n against_o he_o it_o appear_v not_o how_o thing_n stand_v thus_o a_o council_n can_v be_v call_v for_o these_o respect_v some_o propose_v that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v be_v entreat_v to_o grant_v a_o national_a council_n in_o germany_n to_o give_v remedy_n desire_v a_o nationall_n council_n in_o germany_n be_v desire_v to_o the_o danger_n that_o be_v imminent_a which_o if_o it_o please_v he_o not_o at_o least_o the_o better_a to_o withstand_v the_o most_o grievous_a sedition_n that_o he_o will_v be_v content_v to_o defer_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o edict_n of_o worm_n until_o a_o general_a council_n but_o the_o bishop_n who_o have_v no_o other_o aim_n but_o the_o preservation_n of_o their_o own_o authority_n say_v that_o no_o treaty_n ought_v to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n during_o the_o discord_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n but_o that_o all_o shall_v be_v defer_v until_o a_o better_a time_n 84_o the_o opinion_n be_v so_o diverse_a and_o such_o discord_n between_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n and_o those_o that_o be_v incline_v to_o luther_n doctrine_n be_v stir_v up_o that_o spira_n the_o prince_n do_v not_o agree_v in_o the_o diet_n of_o spira_n there_o appear_v manifest_a danger_n of_o civil_a war_n and_o many_o of_o the_o prince_n put_v themselves_o in_o order_n to_o depart_v but_o ferdinand_n and_o the_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o emperor_n see_v clear_o what_o dang_v 〈…〉_o d_o arise_v if_o the_o diet_n be_v dissolve_v with_o such_o dissension_n of_o mind_n and_o 〈◊〉_d prince_n depart_v without_o any_o decree_n because_o they_o will_v have_v proceed_v diverse_o with_o danger_n to_o have_v divide_v germany_n without_o hope_n of_o
commission_n declare_v that_o the_o pope_n mind_n concern_v the_o council_n be_v the_o same_o as_o before_o that_o be_v that_o it_o shall_v one_o day_n be_v celebrate_v that_o he_o have_v suspend_v it_o by_o caesar_n consent_n to_o make_v way_n first_o to_o some_o concord_n in_o germany_n but_o see_v this_o to_o be_v in_o vain_a he_o return_v to_o his_o former_a opinion_n not_o to_o defer_v the_o celebration_n of_o it_o but_o that_o he_o can_v not_o consent_v to_o make_v it_o in_o germany_n because_o he_o mean_v to_o be_v there_o in_o person_n and_o that_o his_o age_n and_o length_n of_o the_o way_n and_o so_o great_a a_o change_n of_o the_o air_n hinder_v his_o go_v into_o that_o country_n and_o that_o it_o seem_v not_o more_o commodious_a for_o other_o nation_n beside_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a probability_n to_o fear_v that_o the_o difference_n can_v not_o be_v handle_v without_o commotion_n therefore_o that_o ferrara_n bolonia_n or_o piacenza_n all_o great_a and_o most_o opportune_a city_n seem_v to_o he_o more_o fit_a but_o in_o case_n they_o like_v they_o not_o he_o be_v content_v to_o call_v it_o in_o trent_n a_o city_n at_o the_o confine_n of_o germany_n that_o his_o will_n be_v to_o begin_v it_o at_o whitsuntide_n but_o for_o the_o straightness_n of_o the_o time_n he_o have_v prorogue_v it_o to_o the_o thirteen_o of_o august_n he_o pray_v they_o all_o to_o be_v present_a there_o and_z lay_v aside_o all_o hatred_n to_o handle_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n with_o sincerity_n ferdinand_n and_o the_o catholic_a prince_n thank_v the_o pope_n and_o say_v that_o not_o be_v able_a to_o obtain_v a_o fit_a place_n in_o germany_n as_o ratibon_n or_o collen_n they_o be_v content_v with_o trent_n but_o the_o protestant_n will_v not_o agree_v 〈◊〉_d consent_v trent_n be_v name_v for_o the_o place_n of_o the_o council_n but_o the_o protestant_n will_v not_o consent_v there_o that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v intimate_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o that_o trent_n shall_v be_v the_o place_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o nothing_o be_v determine_v in_o that_o diet_n concern_v the_o council_n howsoever_o the_o pope_n send_v out_o a_o bull_n of_o the_o intimation_n the_o two_o and_o twenty_o of_o may_v this_o year_n wherein_o have_v declare_v his_o desire_n to_o provide_v 〈…〉_o the_o pope_n publish_v the_o bull_n of_o the_o in_o it_o 〈…〉_o against_o the_o evil_n of_o christendom_n he_o say_v he_o have_v always_o think_v upon_o the_o temedy_n and_o find_v none_o more_o fit_a than_o a_o council_n he_o be_v constant_o resolve_v to_o call_v it_o and_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o convocation_n at_o mantua_n then_o of_o the_o suspension_n after_o of_o the_o convocation_n at_o vicenza_n and_o of_o the_o other_o suspension_n make_v in_o genua_n and_o final_o of_o that_o other_o during_o pleasure_n he_o go_v on_o to_o show_v the_o reason_n that_o induce_v he_o to_o continue_v the_o same_o suspension_n until_o then_o these_o be_v ferdinend_v war_n in_o hungary_n the_o rebellion_n of_o flanders_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o thing_n that_o happen_v in_o the_o diet_n of_o ratubon_n expect_v a_o time_n appoint_v by_o god_n for_o this_o work_n but_o consider_v in_o the_o end_n that_o every_o time_n be_v acceptable_a to_o his_o divine_a majesty_n when_o holy_a thing_n be_v handle_v he_o resolve_v to_o expect_v no_o other_o consent_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o because_o he_o can_v not_o have_v vicenza_n be_v willing_a to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o germany_n concern_v the_o place_n and_o understand_v they_o desire_v trent_n though_o a_o city_n more_o within_o italy_n seem_v to_o he_o more_o commodious_a yet_o his_o fatherly_a charity_n incline_v his_o will_n to_o yield_v to_o their_o demand_n and_o he_o choose_v trent_n to_o celebrate_v there_o a_o ecumenical_a council_n the_o first_o of_o november_n next_o and_o that_o he_o interpose_v that_o time_n that_o his_o decree_n may_v be_v publish_v and_o the_o prelate_n have_v time_n to_o arrive_v at_o the_o place_n therefore_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n which_o himself_o exercise_v on_o earth_n by_o the_o counsel_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o cardinal_n all_o suspension_n be_v remoove_v he_o intimate_v a_o holy_a ecumenical_a and_o general_a council_n in_o that_o city_n a_o fit_a place_n free_a and_o opportune_a for_o all_o nation_n to_o be_v begin_v the_o first_o of_o that_o month_n prosecute_v and_o end_v call_v all_o patriarch_n archbishop_n bishop_n abbat_n and_o those_o who_o by_o law_n or_o privilege_n have_v voice_n in_o general_a counsel_n and_o command_v they_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o oath_n make_v to_o he_o and_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o by_o holy_a obedience_n and_o under_o the_o punishment_n by_o law_n or_o custom_n to_o be_v inflict_v upon_o the_o disobedient_a to_o be_v there_o in_o person_n or_o in_o case_n they_o shall_v be_v hinder_v to_o make_v faith_n of_o the_o hindrance_n or_o send_v proctor_n pray_v the_o emperor_n the_o most_o christian_n king_n and_o all_o other_o king_n duke_n and_o prince_n to_o be_v personal_o present_a or_o in_o case_n they_o can_v to_o send_v ambassador_n man_n of_o gravity_n and_o authority_n and_o to_o cause_v the_o bishop_n and_o prelate_n of_o their_o kingdom_n and_o province_n to_o go_v thither_o desire_v further_o of_o the_o prelate_n and_o prince_n of_o germany_n for_o who_o sake_n the_o council_n be_v intimate_v in_o the_o place_n they_o wish_v that_o the_o thing_n may_v be_v handle_v which_o belong_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o christian_a religion_n to_o the_o correction_n of_o manner_n to_o the_o peace_n and_o concord_n of_o christian_a prince_n and_o people_n and_o oppression_n of_o the_o barbarian_n and_o infidel_n the_o bull_n be_v present_o send_v from_o rome_n to_o also_o inch_n but_o go_v not_o forth_o in_o a_o fit_a time_n for_o francis_n the_o french_a king_n have_v in_o july_n denounce_v war_n in_o threaten_a torme_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o publish_v it_o by_o a_o book_n which_o boh_o 〈…〉_o he_o make_v it_o at_o the_o same_o instant_n in_o brabant_n king_n the_o french_a king_n make_v war_n against_o the_o emperor_n the_o emperor_n except_v against_o the_o bull_n and_o complain_v of_o the_o french_a king_n 〈…〉_o nt_v and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o emperor_n have_v receive_v the_o bull_n of_o the_o council_n answer_v the_o pope_n that_o he_o be_v not_o satisfy_v with_o it_o for_o have_v never_o refuse_v any_o pain_n danger_n or_o do_v that_o the_o council_n 〈…〉_o ght_v be_v end_v and_o contrary_o the_o french_a king_n have_v always_o endeavour_v to_o hinder_v it_o reseem_v strange_a unto_o he_o that_o they_o be_v compare_v and_o make_v equal_a in_o the_o bull_n and_o rehearse_v all_o the_o injury_n which_o he_o protend_v to_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o king_n add_v also_o that_o in_o the_o last_o diet_n at_o spira_n he_o have_v labour_v by_o his_o ambassador_n to_o cherish_v the_o discord_n of_o religion_n by_o promise_a friendship_n and_o favour_n to_o either_o party_n in_o fine_a he_o refer_v it_o to_o his_o holiness_n to_o consider_v if_o the_o action_n of_o that_o king_n do_v ferue_v to_o remedy_v the_o mischief_n of_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n and_o to_o begin_v the_o council_n which_o he_o do_v ever_o cross_a for_o his_o private_a gain_n and_o have_v constrain_v he_o who_o do_v perceive_v it_o to_o find_v a_o way_n to_o reconcile_v the_o difference_n of_o religion_n therefore_o in_o case_n the_o council_n shall_v not_o be_v celebrate_v that_o his_o holiness_n ought_v not_o to_o blame_v he_o but_o the_o king_n and_o denounce_v war_n against_o he_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o assist_v the_o public_a good_a because_o this_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o call_v the_o council_n establish_v religion_n and_o regain_v peace_n the_o king_n presage_v what_o imputation_n will_v be_v lay_v upon_o he_o for_o emperor_n the_o french_a king_n wax_v cruel_a against_o the_o protestant_n to_o free_v himself_o from_o the_o imputation_n lay_v upon_o he_o by_o the_o emperor_n make_v a_o war_n to_o the_o hurt_n of_o religion_n and_o hindrance_n of_o the_o service_n of_o god_n which_o may_v be_v expect_v from_o the_o council_n prevent_v it_o by_o publish_v a_o edict_n against_o the_o lutheran_n command_v the_o parliament_n to_o execute_v it_o inviolable_o with_o severe_a charge_n that_o all_o shall_v be_v appeach_v who_o have_v book_n differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o make_v secret_a conventicle_n that_o transgress_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o church_n and_o especial_o that_o observe_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o meat_n or_o pray_v in_o any_o tongue_n but_o the_o latin_a and_o command_v the_o sorbonist_n to_o be_v diligent_a spy_n against_o they_o afterward_o understand_v the_o
as_o they_o do_v in_o trent_n but_o to_o proceed_v to_o fact_n and_o answer_v the_o emperor_n afterward_o if_o he_o shall_v speak_v of_o it_o therefore_o he_o pope_n the_o archbishop_n be_v cite_v by_o the_o pope_n make_v another_o citation_n against_o the_o archbishop_n the_o eighteen_o of_o july_n that_o within_o sixty_o day_n he_o shall_v appear_v before_o he_o he_o cite_v also_o the_o dean_n of_o collen_n and_o five_o of_o the_o principal_a canon_n leave_v the_o world_n to_o dispute_v how_o the_o archbishop_n can_v appear_v before_o two_o which_o cite_v he_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n in_o diverse_a place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o how_o a_o dispute_n of_o the_o competency_n of_o the_o place_n of_o judicature_n belong_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n but_o how_o this_o succeed_v and_o what_o end_n the_o cause_n have_v shall_v be_v say_v in_o its_o place_n to_o return_v to_o that_o which_o more_o near_o concern_v the_o council_n the_o emperor_n assay_v in_o the_o diet_n diverse_a way_n to_o make_v the_o protestant_n grant_v he_o answer_n the_o emperor_n demand_v assistance_n against_o the_o turk_n of_o the_o protestant_n who_o give_v a_o conditional_a answer_n assistance_n against_o the_o turk_n not_o mention_v religion_n whereunto_o they_o still_o answer_v that_o they_o can_v not_o resolve_v without_o they_o be_v secure_v that_o the_o peace_n shall_v be_v keep_v and_o that_o by_o the_o convocation_n in_o trent_n under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o council_n it_o be_v not_o understand_v that_o the_o time_n of_o the_o peace_n be_v end_v according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o former_a diet_n but_o declare_v that_o the_o peace_n can_v be_v interrupt_v nor_o themselves_o enforce_v by_o any_o decree_v make_v in_o trent_n because_o they_o can_v submit_v themselves_o to_o that_o council_n where_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v condemn_v they_o already_o have_v free_a power_n the_o emperor_n say_v he_o can_v not_o give_v they_o peace_n which_o may_v exempt_v they_o from_o the_o council_n to_o who_o authority_n all_o be_v subject_a that_o he_o have_v no_o way_n to_o excuse_v himself_o to_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n if_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o germany_n alone_a not_o to_o obey_v the_o council_n assemble_v especial_o for_o her_o sake_n but_o if_o as_o they_o say_v they_o pretend_v a_o cause_n why_o they_o will_v not_o submit_v let_v they_o go_v to_o the_o council_n and_o allege_v their_o reason_n why_o they_o suspect_v it_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v hear_v and_o if_o it_o appear_v they_o have_v wrong_v they_o may_v then_o refuse_v that_o it_o be_v not_o pertinent_a to_o prevent_v and_o to_o suspect_v that_o which_o appear_v not_o pretend_v grievance_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v and_o judge_v of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o see_v as_o yet_o they_o reply_v they_o speak_v not_o of_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o past_a their_o religion_n be_v condemn_v already_o and_o persecute_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o his_o adherent_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o to_o expect_v any_o future_a judgement_n because_o it_o be_v pass_v already_o that_o it_o be_v just_a that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n of_o germany_n and_o of_o all_o other_o place_n shall_v make_v one_o part_n in_o the_o council_n and_o themselves_o the_o other_o and_o for_o the_o difficulty_n about_o the_o manner_n and_o order_n of_o proceed_v the_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n shall_v be_v judge_n but_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o they_o can_v not_o be_v remoove_v from_o this_o resolution_n though_o the_o ambassador_n of_o france_n there_o present_a do_v very_o much_o and_o with_o menace_a term_n entreat_v they_o to_o consent_v to_o the_o council_n which_o threat_v the_o minister_n of_o that_o k._n the_o pope_n favourer_n do_v dictate_v to_o the_o ambassador_n when_o he_o part_v from_o france_n the_o imperialist_n propose_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o council_n into_o germany_n under_o the_o emperor_n promise_n to_o labour_v effectual_o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v condescend_v which_o the_o other_o accept_v upon_o condition_n the_o peace_n be_v establish_v until_o the_o council_n be_v assemble_v there_o but_o charles_n be_v sure_a that_o the_o pope_n will_v never_o agree_v see_v that_o this_o be_v to_o give_v they_o a_o perpetual_a peace_n and_o therefore_o he_o think_v it_o better_a to_o leave_v thing_n in_o suspense_n grant_v it_o only_o until_o another_o diet_n see_v he_o be_v constrain_v have_v not_o conclude_v truce_n with_o the_o turk_n as_o yet_o and_o esteem_v more_o that_o war_n think_v that_o by_o occasion_n of_o a_o colloquy_n other_o reasonable_a mean_n will_v be_v offer_v hereafter_o to_o make_v they_o consent_v anew_o to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n or_o in_o case_n of_o refusal_n to_o hold_v they_o contumacious_a and_o to_o make_v war_n against_o they_o therefore_o the_o four_o of_o august_n he_o end_v the_o diet_n and_o ordain_v another_o in_o ratubon_n january_n another_o diet_n be_v ordain_v in_o ratubon_n for_o january_n for_o january_n next_o whereat_o the_o prince_n shall_v be_v personal_o present_a and_o institute_v a_o colloquy_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n of_o four_o doctor_n and_o two_o judge_n for_o a_o side_n this_o be_v to_o begin_v at_o december_n that_o the_o matter_n may_v be_v digest_v before_o the_o diet._n he_o confirm_v and_o renew_v the_o former_a edict_n of_o peace_n and_o set_v down_o a_o manner_n to_o pay_v the_o contribution_n for_o the_o war_n how_o the_o colloquy_n do_v proceed_v shall_v be_v say_v in_o its_o place_n the_o protestant_n be_v depart_v from_o worm_n set_v forth_o a_o book_n where_o council_n the_o protestant_n do_v protest_v against_o the_o tridentine_a council_n they_o say_v in_o sum_n that_o they_o esteem_v not_o the_o tridentine_n for_o a_o council_n be_v not_o assemble_v in_o germany_n as_o adrian_n and_o the_o emperor_n promise_v whereunto_o to_o make_v show_n of_o give_v satisfaction_n by_o make_v choice_n of_o trent_n be_v to_o mock_v the_o world_n because_o trent_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o germany_n but_o only_o because_o the_o bishop_n be_v a_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o for_o security_n that_o it_o be_v aswell_o in_o italy_n and_o as_o much_o in_o the_o pope_n power_n as_o rome_n itself_o and_o the_o rather_o they_o esteem_v it_o not_o lawful_a because_o pope_n paul_n will_v be_v precedent_n in_o it_o and_o propose_v by_o his_o legate_n that_o the_o judge_n be_v tie_v unto_o he_o by_o oath_n that_o the_o plea_n be_v against_o the_o pope_n himself_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v judge_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o treat_v first_o of_o the_o form_n of_o the_o council_n and_o of_o the_o authority_n whereupon_o to_o ground_n but_o the_o emperor_n resolution_n displease_v religion_n the_o emperor_n be_v tax_v again_o for_o meddle_v in_o religion_n alike_o in_o trent_n and_o at_o rome_n as_o well_o because_o a_o secular_a prince_n meddle_v in_o religion_n as_o because_o it_o seem_v the_o council_n be_v casseer_v in_o regard_n that_o approach_v order_n be_v give_v to_o handle_v elsewhere_o the_o controversy_n of_o doctrine_n the_o prelate_n in_o trent_n blame_v the_o decree_n as_o it_o be_v with_o one_o voice_n say_v it_o be_v worse_a than_o that_o of_o spira_n and_o marvel_v that_o the_o pope_n who_o show_v himself_o so_o quick_a against_o that_o have_v and_o do_v tolarate_v this_o after_o that_o the_o council_n be_v intimate_v and_o already_o assemble_v from_o this_o they_o draw_v a_o manifest_a argument_n that_o their_o remain_v in_o trent_n be_v vain_a and_o dishonourable_a the_o legate_n try_v their_o wit_n to_o consolate_v and_o persuade_v they_o that_o all_o depart_v the_o prelate_n in_o trent_n be_v discontent_v and_o most_o of_o they_o do_v depart_v have_v be_v permit_v by_o his_o holiness_n for_o a_o good_a end_n but_o they_o reply_v that_o whatsoever_o the_o end_n be_v and_o what_o thing_n soever_o do_v follow_v the_o blemish_n not_o only_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o apostolic_a sea_n but_o of_o the_o council_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n will_v never_o be_v take_v away_o neither_o can_v the_o legate_n resist_v their_o complaint_n which_o end_v in_o demand_v leave_n to_o depart_v some_o allege_v necessary_a and_o important_a affair_n of_o their_o own_o and_o some_o to_o retire_v themselves_o into_o some_o of_o the_o next_o city_n for_o infirmity_n or_o indisposition_n and_o though_o the_o legate_n give_v leave_v to_o none_o yet_o some_o of_o they_o daily_o take_v it_o so_o that_o before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o month_n there_o remain_v very_o few_o but_o in_o rome_n though_o this_o success_n be_v foresee_v by_o the_o negotiation_n of_o cardinal_n farnese_n yet_o after_o it_o happen_v they_o begin_v to_o think_v more_o exact_o of_o it_o they_o consider_v that_o the_o emperor_n end_n be_v much_o different_a from_o
proposition_n trouble_v the_o legate_n more_o than_o the_o former_a yet_o the_o cardinal_n monte_n sudden_o answer_v that_o counsel_n have_v speak_v diverse_o according_a to_o the_o occurrence_n of_o the_o time_n that_o former_o the_o pope_n have_v always_o be_v acknowledge_v for_o head_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o ever_o any_o council_n have_v be_v demand_v with_o condition_n it_o shall_v not_o depend_v on_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o duchman_n now_o do_v with_o great_a boldness_n unto_o which_o heretical_a temeritie_n it_o be_v fit_a to_o resist_v in_o every_o action_n show_v they_o be_v join_v with_o the_o head_n which_o be_v the_o pope_n by_o make_v mention_n of_o his_o legate_n he_o speak_v much_o in_o this_o matter_n and_o know_v he_o can_v better_o maintain_v it_o by_o diversion_n than_o persuasion_n he_o be_v a_o mean_n they_o shall_v pass_v to_o another_o thing_n the_o content_n of_o the_o decree_n be_v approve_v by_o all_o but_o there_o be_v one_o particle_n in_o it_o in_o which_o every_o one_o be_v exhort_v to_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o the_o pope_n emperor_n and_o king_n the_o french_a prelate_n desire_v there_o shall_v special_a mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o french_a king_n this_o the_o cardinal_n santa_n croce_n commend_v but_o add_v that_o the_o like_a specification_n will_v be_v expect_v by_o all_o in_o their_o place_n which_o will_v prove_v a_o long_a business_n and_o full_a of_o danger_n by_o reason_n of_o precedency_n the_o french_a man_n reply_v that_o in_o the_o bull_n of_o the_o convocation_n the_o pope_n have_v make_v mention_n only_o of_o the_o emperor_n and_o french_a king_n and_o therefore_o by_o that_o example_n they_o shall_v name_v they_o both_o or_o neither_o the_o legate_n take_v time_n to_o think_v of_o it_o be_v desirous_a to_o give_v every_o one_o satisfaction_n the_o seven_o of_o january_n all_o the_o prelate_n clad_v in_o their_o ordinary_a habit_n assemble_v 7._o the_o session_n january_n 7._o themselves_o in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o prime_a legate_n from_o whence_o they_o go_v to_o the_o cathedral_n church_n with_o the_o cross_n before_o they_o out_o of_o the_o country_n of_o trent_n be_v collect_v into_o the_o city_n three_o hundred_o foot_n arm_v partly_o with_o pike_n and_o partly_o with_o harquebuss_n and_o some_o horse_n these_o put_v themselves_o in_o file_n on_o either_o side_n the_o way_n from_o the_o house_n of_o the_o church_n where_o the_o legate_n and_o prelate_n be_v enter_v the_o soldier_n return_v to_o the_o market_n place_n and_o discharge_v their_o harquebuss_n and_o remain_v there_o to_o guard_v the_o session_n beside_o the_o legate_n and_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n there_o be_v present_a four_o archbishop_n twenty_o eight_o bishop_n three_o abbat_n of_o the_o congregation_n of_o cassina_n and_o four_o general_n who_o sit_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o session_n these_o forty_o three_o person_n make_v the_o general_a council_n of_o the_o archbishop_n two_o be_v titular_a only_o never_o see_v in_o the_o church_n from_o which_o they_o have_v their_o name_n which_o the_o pope_n give_v they_o only_o to_o do_v they_o honour_n the_o one_o be_v olaus_n magnus_n archbishop_n of_o vpsala_n in_o gothland_n the_o other_o robert_n venante_fw-la a_o scottish-man_n archbishop_n of_o armagh_n in_o ireland_n who_o though_o he_o be_v purblind_a be_v commend_v for_o his_o virtue_n to_o ride_v post_o the_o best_a in_o the_o world_n these_o two_o man_n have_v be_v relieve_v certain_a year_n in_o rome_n by_o the_o pope_n alm_n be_v send_v to_o trent_n to_o increase_v the_o number_n and_o to_o depend_v on_o the_o legate_n about_o the_o number_n of_o twenty_o divine_n stand_v on_o their_o foot_n the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o proctor_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o ausburg_n be_v present_a and_o sit_v upon_o the_o ambassador_n bench_n and_o near_o unto_o they_o upon_o the_o same_o bench_n sit_v ten_o gentleman_n choose_v out_o of_o the_o border_a place_n by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n john_n fonseca_n bishop_n of_o castelamare_fw-la say_v mass_n and_o coriolanus_n martiranus_n bishop_n of_o s._n mark_v make_v the_o sermon_n when_o the_o mass_n be_v end_v the_o prelate_n put_v on_o their_o pontifical_a habit_n and_o then_o the_o litany_n and_o prayer_n be_v say_v as_o in_o the_o first_o session_n after_o this_o all_o sit_v down_o and_o the_o bishop_n that_o say_v mass_n mount_v into_o the_o pulpit_n read_v the_o forename_a bull_n against_o admit_v to_o give_v voice_n the_o proctor_n of_o those_o that_o be_v absent_a without_o mention_v the_o other_o where_o those_o of_o germany_n be_v except_v then_o he_o read_v the_o decree_n in_o which_o the_o synod_n exhort_v all_o the_o faithful_a assemble_v in_o trent_n to_o live_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o daily_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o peace_n of_o prince_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o those_o of_o the_o council_n to_o say_v mass_n at_o the_o least_o on_o sunday_n and_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o pope_n emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n and_o all_o to_o fast_o give_v alm_n to_o be_v sober_a and_o to_o instruct_v their_o family_n it_o exhort_v also_o all_o man_n especial_o the_o learned_a to_o bethink_v themselves_o exact_o how_o to_o resist_v heresy_n and_o in_o the_o assembly_n to_o use_v modesty_n in_o speak_v and_o it_o ordain_v beside_o that_o if_o any_o sit_v not_o in_o their_o place_n or_o give_v not_o voice_n or_o be_v not_o present_a in_o their_o congregation_n he_o shall_v not_o receive_v any_o prejudice_n or_o gain_v any_o new_a right_n the_o father_n be_v interrogated_a after_o this_o be_v read_v they_o answer_v it_o please_v they_o but_o the_o french_a man_n add_v that_o they_o approve_v not_o so_o bare_a a_o title_n and_o require_v a_o addition_n of_o represent_v the_o universal_a church_n in_o fine_a the_o next_o session_n be_v appoint_v the_o four_o of_o february_n and_o the_o father_n have_v leave_v to_o depart_v who_o put_v off_o their_o pontifical_a habit_n do_v in_o their_o ordinary_a apparel_n accompany_v the_o legate_n home_o in_o the_o same_o order_n they_o come_v to_o church_n which_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o the_o session_n afterward_o after_o the_o session_n there_o be_v no_o congregation_n hold_v until_o the_o thirteen_o of_o january_n because_o peter_n pacceco_n bishop_n of_o jahen_n late_o create_v cardinal_n who_o expect_v the_o hat_n from_o rome_n without_o which_o the_o ceremony_n give_v he_o not_o leave_v to_o go_v abroad_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o be_v there_o because_o order_n be_v to_o be_v take_v therein_o that_o no_o inconvenience_n shall_v happen_v in_o the_o session_n the_o congregation_n be_v assemble_v the_o legate_n complain_v of_o those_o who_o in_o the_o session_n have_v oppose_v the_o title_n they_o show_v it_o be_v not_o seemly_a to_o cause_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n to_o appear_v in_o that_o public_a place_n that_o the_o congregation_n be_v make_v that_o every_o one_o may_v deliver_v his_o mind_n more_o private_o and_o all_o agree_v in_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v publish_v that_o nothing_o will_v more_o daunt_v the_o heretic_n and_o encourage_v the_o catholic_n than_o the_o fame_n of_o union_n they_o descend_v to_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o title_n and_o say_v that_o none_o be_v more_o fit_a than_o that_o which_o the_o pope_n have_v give_v in_o the_o convocation_n and_o in_o so_o many_o other_o bull_n where_o it_o be_v call_v ecumenical_a and_o universal_a unto_o which_o it_o be_v superfluous_a to_o add_v representation_n in_o regard_n whole_a book_n declare_v what_o a_o council_n lawful_o call_v and_o begin_v be_v and_o do_v represent_v that_o by_o do_v otherwise_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o make_v doubt_n of_o the_o authority_n thereof_o and_o resemble_v it_o to_o some_o other_o council_n unto_o which_o they_o give_v that_o title_n be_v willing_a to_o supply_v with_o word_n the_o lawful_a authority_n which_o they_o know_v it_o want_v glance_v at_o that_o of_o basil_n and_o constance_n but_o to_o make_v a_o firm_a resolution_n they_o will_v have_v every_o one_o deliver_v his_o opinion_n the_o cardinal_n pacceco_n begin_v to_o say_v the_o council_n be_v adorn_v with_o very_a many_o title_n which_o if_o they_o be_v use_v in_o all_o occasion_n the_o expression_n of_o they_o will_v be_v great_a than_o the_o body_n of_o the_o decree_n but_o as_o a_o great_a emperor_n council_n a_o dispute_n about_o the_o title_n of_o the_o council_n possessor_n of_o many_o kingdom_n and_o state_n use_v in_o his_o edict_n the_o title_n only_o from_o whence_o they_o have_v force_n and_o often_o put_v his_o own_o name_n to_o they_o without_o any_o title_n at_o all_o so_o this_o council_n according_a to_o the_o subject_n that_o shall_v be_v handle_v aught_o to_o use_v many_o title_n to_o express_v its_o authority_n but_o now_o that_o they_o be_v in_o
which_o command_v to_o have_v the_o hebrew_n text_n to_o examine_v the_o relitie_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o greek_a for_o a_o direction_n in_o those_o of_o the_o new_a to_o approve_v a_o translation_n as_o authentical_a be_v to_o condemn_v s._n hierome_n and_o all_o those_o who_o have_v translate_v if_o any_o be_v authentical_a to_o what_o end_n serve_v the_o rest_n which_o be_v not_o it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a vanity_n to_o produce_v uncertain_a copy_n when_o there_o be_v some_o infallible_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v of_o the_o opinion_n of_o 9_o hierome_n and_o caietane_n that_o every_o interpreter_n may_v err_v though_o he_o have_v use_v all_o art_n not_o to_o vary_v from_o the_o original_n but_o sure_o it_o be_v that_o if_o the_o holy_a council_n shall_v examine_v or_o correct_v a_o interpretation_n according_a to_o the_o true_a text_n the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o assi_v synod_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n will_v keep_v they_o from_o err_v and_o such_o a_o translation_n so_o examine_v and_o approve_a may_v be_v call_v authentical_a but_o that_o any_o can_v be_v approve_v without_o such_o a_o examination_n with_o assurance_n of_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o dare_v not_o say_v except_o the_o synod_n do_v determine_v it_o see_v that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n a_o great_a inquisition_n be_v make_v before_o but_o this_o be_v a_o work_n of_o ten_o year_n and_o impossible_a to_o be_v undertake_v it_o seem_v better_a to_o leave_v thing_n as_o they_o have_v remain_v 1500._o year_n that_o the_o latin_a translation_n shall_v be_v verify_v by_o the_o original_a text_n on_o the_o contrary_a the_o mayor_n part_n of_o the_o divine_n say_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o account_v that_o translation_n which_o former_o have_v be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n and_o use_v in_o the_o school_n to_o be_v divine_a and_o authentical_a otherwise_o they_o shall_v yield_v the_o cause_n to_o the_o lutheran_n and_o open_v a_o gate_n to_o innumerable_a heresy_n hereafter_o and_o continual_o trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o christendom_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v in_o a_o great_a part_n found_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o by_o school_n divine_n upon_o some_o passage_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o if_o every_o one_o have_v liberty_n to_o examine_v whether_o it_o be_v well_o translate_v run_v to_o other_o translation_n or_o seek_v how_o it_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a or_o hebrew_n these_o new_a grammarian_n will_v confound_v all_o and_o will_v be_v make_v judge_n and_o arbiter_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o divine_n and_o canonist_n pedanties_n shall_v be_v prefer_v to_o be_v bishop_n and_o cardinal_n the_o inquisitor_n will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o proceed_v against_o the_o lutheran_n in_o case_n they_o know_v not_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a because_o they_o will_v sudden_o answer_v the_o text_n be_v not_o so_o and_o that_o the_o translation_n be_v false_a and_o every_o novity_n or_o toy_n that_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o head_n of_o any_o grammarian_n either_o for_o malice_n or_o want_v of_o knowledge_n in_o divinity_n so_o that_o he_o may_v but_o find_v some_o grammatical_a trick_n in_o those_o tongue_n to_o confirm_v it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o ground_n himself_o thereon_o and_o he_o will_v never_o make_v a_o end_n that_o it_o do_v appear_v since_o luther_n begin_v to_o translate_v the_o scripture_n how_o many_o diverse_a and_o contrary_a translation_n have_v see_v the_o light_n which_o deserve_v to_o be_v bury_v in_o perpetual_a darkness_n and_o how_o often_o martin_n himself_o have_v change_v his_o own_o translation_n that_o never_o any_o have_v be_v reprint_v without_o some_o notable_a change_n not_o of_o one_o or_o two_o passage_n but_o of_o a_o hundred_o in_o a_o breath_n that_o if_o this_o liberty_n be_v give_v to_o all_o christianity_n will_v soon_o be_v bring_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o no_o man_n will_v know_v what_o to_o believe_v to_o these_o reason_n which_o the_o mayor_n part_v applaud_v other_o add_v also_o that_o if_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n have_v give_v a_o authentical_a scripture_n to_o the_o synagogue_n and_o a_o authentical_a new_a testament_n to_o the_o grecian_n it_o can_v be_v say_v without_o derogation_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n more_o belove_v than_o the_o rest_n have_v want_v this_o great_a benefit_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n who_o do_v dictate_v the_o holy_a book_n have_v dictate_v also_o that_o translation_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v accept_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n some_o think_v it_o hard_o to_o make_v a_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n only_o to_o translate_v a_o book_n therefore_o they_o moderate_v the_o assertion_n and_o say_v that_o he_o have_v not_o a_o prophericall_a or_o apostolical_a spirit_n but_o one_o very_o near_o and_o if_o any_o shall_v make_v dainty_a to_o give_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o the_o interpreter_n yet_o he_o can_v deny_v it_o to_o the_o council_n and_o when_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n shall_v be_v approve_v and_o a_o anathema_n thunder_v against_o whosoever_o will_v not_o receive_v it_o this_o will_v be_v without_o error_n not_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o he_o that_o write_v it_o but_o of_o the_o synod_n that_o have_v receive_v it_o for_o such_o d._n isidorus_n clarus_n a_o brescian_a and_o a_o benedictine_n abbat_n a_o man_n well_o see_v in_o this_o study_n go_v about_o to_o remove_v this_o opinion_n by_o a_o historical_a narration_n and_o say_v in_o substance_n that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n there_o be_v many_o greek_a translation_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o origen_n gather_v into_o one_o volume_n confornt_v they_o in_o six_o column_n the_o chief_a of_o these_o be_v call_v of_o the_o septuagint_n from_o whence_o diverse_a in_o latin_a be_v take_v and_o many_o be_v take_v from_o the_o greek_a text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n one_o of_o which_o most_o follow_v and_o read_v in_o the_o church_n and_o esteem_v the_o best_a by_o saint_n austin_n be_v call_v itala_n yet_o so_o as_o that_o the_o greek_a text_n ought_v undoubted_o to_o be_v prefer_v but_o saint_n hierom_n a_o man_n as_o all_o do_v know_v skilful_a in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o tongue_n see_v that_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o swerve_v from_o the_o hebrew_n truth_n by_o the_o fault_n partly_o of_o the_o greek_a interpreter_n and_o partly_o of_o the_o latin_a make_v one_o immediate_o out_o of_o the_o hebrew_n and_o amend_v that_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o greek_a text_n hieroms_n credit_n make_v his_o translation_n to_o be_v receive_v by_o many_o but_o be_v reject_v by_o some_o either_o because_o they_o love_v more_o the_o error_n of_o antiquity_n then_o new_a truth_n or_o as_o himself_o complain_v by_o reason_n of_o emulation_n but_o a_o few_o year_n after_o when_o envy_n be_v lay_v aside_o that_o of_o s._n hierom_n be_v receive_v by_o all_o the_o latin_n &_o so_o they_o be_v both_o in_o use_n one_o be_v call_v the_o old_a and_o the_o other_o the_o new_a saint_n gregory_n write_v to_o leander_n upon_o job_n testify_v that_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n use_v they_o both_o and_o that_o himself_o in_o the_o exposition_n of_o that_o book_n make_v choice_n to_o follow_v the_o new_a as_o conformable_a to_o the_o hebrew_n text_n yet_o in_o the_o allegation_n he_o will_v use_v sometime_o one_o sometime_o another_o as_o it_o best_o befit_v his_o purpose_n the_o time_n follow_v by_o the_o use_n of_o they_o both_o compose_v one_o take_v part_n of_o the_o new_a and_o part_n of_o the_o old_a according_a as_o the_o accident_n require_v and_o to_o this_o the_o name_n of_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n be_v give_v the_o psalm_n be_v all_o of_o the_o old_a because_o be_v daily_o sing_v in_o the_o church_n they_o can_v not_o be_v change_v the_o lesser_a prophet_n be_v all_o of_o the_o new_a &_o the_o great_a mix_v of_o both_o this_o be_v very_o true_a that_o all_o have_v happen_v by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n without_o which_o nothing_o can_v succeed_v but_o yet_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o there_o be_v in_o it_o great_a knowledge_n then_o humane_a saint_n hierome_n say_v plain_o that_o no_o interpreter_n ghost_n s._n jerom_n say_v that_o no_o interpreter_n have_v speak_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v speak_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o edition_n which_o we_o have_v be_v he_o for_o the_o most_o part_n it_o will_v be_v strange_a to_o attribute_v the_o assistance_n of_o god_n to_o he_o that_o know_v and_o affirm_v he_o have_v it_o not_o wherefore_o no_o translation_n can_v be_v compare_v to_o the_o text_n in_o the_o original_a tongue_n therefore_o his_o opinion_n be_v that_o the_o vulgar_a
the_o people_n when_o the_o friar_n and_o pardoner_n have_v authority_n to_o preach_v against_o their_o will_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o innovation_n in_o germany_n spring_v from_o the_o sermon_n of_o friar_n john_n techel_n and_o of_o friar_n martin_n luther_n among_o the_o swiss_n from_o the_o sermon_n of_o friar_n samson_n of_o milan_n and_o the_o reside_a bishop_n be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o but_o fight_v with_o disadvantage_n against_o these_o who_o be_v arm_v with_o privilege_n the_o bishop_n be_v not_o able_a to_o make_v the_o clergy_n live_v honest_o for_o that_o beside_o the_o general_a exemption_n of_o all_o the_o regulars_n every_o chapter_n have_v one_o and_o there_o be_v few_o particular_a priest_n that_o want_v it_o the_o bishop_n can_v provide_v that_o fit_a man_n be_v promote_v to_o that_o charge_n for_o the_o licence_n to_o promote_v and_o the_o faculty_n which_o the_o titular_a bishop_n enjoy_v who_o suffer_v he_o not_o to_o use_v so_o much_o as_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o pontifical_o and_o it_o may_v be_v say_v in_o one_o word_n that_o the_o bishop_n do_v not_o reside_v because_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v or_o rather_o that_o they_o may_v not_o make_v great_a inconvenience_n to_o arise_v which_o will_v happen_v by_o their_o concurrence_n and_o contention_n with_o privilege_a man_n he_o conclude_v that_o as_o he_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o restore_v residency_n so_o they_o ought_v to_o treat_v how_o to_o restore_v the_o episcopal_a authority_n the_o bishop_n that_o speak_v after_o this_o prelate_n follow_v his_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o command_v residency_n and_o to_o remove_v the_o exemption_n which_o do_v hinder_v it_o and_o the_o legate_n be_v enforce_v to_o consent_v that_o both_o shall_v be_v consider_v of_o and_o that_o every_o one_o speak_v his_o opinion_n of_o they_o and_o that_o some_o father_n shall_v be_v depute_v to_o frame_v the_o decree_n that_o it_o may_v be_v examine_v the_o deputy_n for_o collect_v the_o article_n of_o justification_n have_v receive_v proceed_v the_o deputy_n for_o collect_v the_o article_n dissent_v about_o the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v the_o extract_n of_o the_o proposition_n note_v by_o every_o one_o to_o be_v censure_v be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o opinion_n one_o part_n desire_v that_o four_o or_o six_o fundamental_a article_n of_o the_o new_a doctrine_n may_v be_v choose_v and_o condemn_v as_o be_v do_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o original_a sin_n allege_v that_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o follow_v the_o stile_n begin_v and_o the_o example_n of_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n which_o have_v declare_v the_o principal_a article_n condemn_v the_o heresy_n never_o descend_v to_o particular_a proposition_n but_o condemn_v the_o book_n of_o the_o heretic_n in_o that_o universal_a they_o comprehend_v all_o the_o pernicious_a doctrine_n and_o so_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o council_n require_v but_o the_o other_o part_n aim_v to_o put_v under_o censure_n all_o the_o proposition_n which_o may_v receive_v a_o bad_a construction_n that_o those_o may_v be_v condemn_v which_o in_o reason_n do_v deserve_v it_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n to_o discern_v entire_o the_o wholesome_a grass_n from_o the_o hurtful_a and_o not_o to_o suffer_v the_o flock_n to_o taste_v of_o this_o and_o if_o the_o example_n of_o ancient_a counsel_n ought_v to_o be_v imitate_v they_o shall_v imitate_v that_o of_o ephesus_n which_o make_v so_o many_o and_o so_o famous_a anathematism_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o nestorius_n that_o they_o do_v contain_v whatsoever_o the_o heretic_n have_v say_v and_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n which_o descend_v to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o all_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o sect_n the_o first_o opinion_n do_v undoubted_o propose_v a_o more_o easy_a way_n and_o will_v justification_n 25._o article_n concern_v justification_n have_v please_v whosoever_o desire_v a_o speedy_a end_n of_o the_o council_n and_o leave_v a_o chink_n open_a for_o agreement_n which_o future_a time_n may_v produce_v yet_o the_o second_o be_v embrace_v which_o say_v it_o be_v good_a to_o examine_v all_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o lutheran_n doctrine_n to_o censure_v and_o condemn_v that_o which_o after_o mature_a deliberation_n shall_v seem_v necessary_a and_o convenient_a and_o 25._o article_n be_v frame_v 1._o faith_n without_o work_n be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n and_o alone_o do_v justify_v 2._o justify_v faith_n be_v a_o sure_a trust_n by_o which_o one_o believe_v that_o his_o sin_n be_v remit_v for_o christ_n and_o those_o that_o be_v justify_v be_v bind_v to_o believe_v certain_o that_o their_o sin_n be_v remit_v 3._o by_o faith_n only_o we_o be_v able_a to_o appear_v before_o god_n who_o neither_o regard_v nor_o have_v need_n of_o our_o work_n faith_n only_o make_v we_o pure_a and_o worthy_a to_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n believe_v that_o in_o it_o we_o shall_v receive_v grace_n 4._o those_o that_o do_v honest_a thing_n without_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v sin_n for_o that_o they_o do_v they_o with_o awicked_a heart_n and_o it_o be_v sin_n to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n without_o faith_n 5._o the_o best_a repentance_n be_v a_o new_a life_n and_o the_o repentance_n of_o the_o life_n past_a be_v not_o necessary_a neither_o do_v the_o repentance_n of_o actual_a sin_n dispose_v we_o to_o receive_v grace_n 6._o no_o disposition_n be_v necessary_a to_o justification_n neither_o do_v faith_n justify_v because_o it_o dispose_v we_o but_o because_o it_o be_v a_o mean_n or_o instrument_n by_o which_o the_o promise_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v lay_v hold_v on_o and_o receive_v 7._o the_o fear_n of_o hell_n help_v not_o in_o gain_v of_o justice_n yea_o hurt_v and_o be_v sin_n and_o make_v the_o sinner_n worse_o 8._o contrition_n which_o arise_v from_o the_o discussion_n call_v to_o mind_n and_o detestation_n of_o sin_n weigh_v the_o grievousnesse_n multitude_n and_o filthiness_n of_o they_o or_o the_o loss_n of_o eternal_a happiness_n and_o gain_v of_o perpetual_a damnation_n make_v a_o man_n a_o hypocrite_n and_o a_o great_a sinner_n 9_o the_o fear_n by_o which_o sinner_n be_v terrify_v either_o internal_o by_o god_n or_o external_o by_o preacher_n be_v sin_n until_o they_o be_v overcome_v by_o faith_n 10._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o disposition_n destroy_v that_o of_o faith_n and_o take_v consolation_n from_o the_o conscience_n 11._o only_o faith_n be_v necessary_a and_o other_o thing_n be_v neither_o command_v nor_o forbid_v neither_o be_v sin_n any_o thing_n but_o incredulity_n 12._o he_o that_o have_v faith_n be_v free_a from_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n and_o have_v no_o need_n of_o work_n to_o be_v save_v for_o faith_n give_v all_o abundant_o and_o alone_o fulfil_v all_o the_o commandment_n and_o no_o work_n of_o a_o faithful_a man_n be_v so_o bad_a as_o may_v accuse_v or_o condemn_v he_o 13._o a_o man_n baptize_v can_v lose_v salvation_n by_o reason_n of_o any_o sin_n whatsoever_o except_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v and_o no_o sin_n but_o infidelity_n separate_v we_o from_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 14_o faith_n and_o work_n be_v contrary_a and_o work_n can_v be_v teach_v without_o shipwreck_n of_o faith_n 15._o externall_n work_v of_o the_o second_o table_n be_v hypocrisy_n 16._o the_o justify_v be_v set_v free_a from_o guilt_n and_o punishment_n and_o satisfaction_n neither_o in_o this_o life_n nor_o after_o death_n be_v necessary_a and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n or_o satisfaction_n which_o be_v part_n of_o penance_n 17._o the_o justify_v though_o they_o have_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n can_v fulfil_v the_o law_n or_o avoid_v sin_n though_o mortal_a 18._o obedience_n unto_o the_o law_n in_o the_o justify_v be_v weak_a and_o unpure_a in_o itself_o not_o acceptable_a to_o god_n but_o accept_v for_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o person_n reconcile_v who_o believe_v that_o the_o remainder_n of_o sin_n be_v forgive_v he_o 19_o the_o just_a sin_v in_o every_o good_a work_n and_o no_o work_n make_v the_o sin_n venial_a 20._o all_o the_o work_n of_o man_n yea_o of_o the_o most_o sanctify_a be_v sin_n the_o work_n of_o the_o just_a be_v venial_a by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n but_o in_o the_o rigour_n of_o his_o judgement_n be_v mortal_a 21._o though_o the_o just_a aught_o to_o doubt_v that_o his_o work_n be_v sin_n yet_o he_o ought_v withal_o to_o be_v assure_v that_o they_o be_v not_o impute_v 22._o grace_n and_o justice_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o will_n of_o god_n neither_o have_v the_o justify_v any_o inherent_a justice_n in_o they_o and_o their_o sin_n be_v not_o abolish_v but_o only_o remit_v and_o not_o impute_v 23._o our_o justice_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o imputation_n of_o the_o justice_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o just_a have_v need_n of_o a_o continual_a
the_o artifice_n of_o that_o proposition_n which_o be_v in_o the_o five_o chapter_n neque_fw-la homo_fw-la ipse_fw-la nihil_fw-la omnino_fw-la agate_n which_o they_o say_v be_v not_o intelligible_a and_o without_o example_n for_o if_o the_o synod_n will_v signify_v etiam_fw-la homo_fw-la ipse_fw-la aliquid_fw-la agate_n it_o may_v say_v so_o plain_o as_o be_v fit_a to_o do_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n where_o the_o more_o simple_a expression_n be_v the_o better_a and_o if_o they_o will_v use_v a_o elegancy_n they_o may_v say_v etiam_fw-la homo_fw-la ipse_fw-la nihil_fw-la agate_n but_o the_o word_n omnino_fw-la be_v interpose_v that_o speech_n be_v incongruous_a and_o without_o sense_n as_o all_o be_v which_o have_v two_o negative_n that_o can_v be_v resolve_v into_o a_o affirmative_a for_o to_o resolve_v that_o one_o must_v say_v etiam_fw-la homo_fw-la ipse_fw-la aliquid_fw-la omnino_fw-la agate_n which_o be_v incongruous_a and_o not_o to_o be_v understand_v what_o aliquid_fw-la omnino_fw-la may_v signify_v here_o for_o it_o will_v say_v that_o a_o man_n have_v a_o action_n in_o a_o certain_a kind_n which_o in_o another_o kind_n be_v no_o action_n the_o father_n be_v defend_v by_o say_v that_o to_o examine_v the_o form_n of_o speech_n so_o severe_o be_v nothing_o but_o to_o cavil_n whereunto_o they_o reply_v that_o a_o gentle_a interpretation_n be_v due_a unto_o usual_a form_n of_o speech_n but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o public_a utility_n to_o discover_v the_o artifice_n of_o he_o that_o leave_v the_o clear_a and_o usual_a phrase_n invent_v those_o that_o be_v incongruous_a and_o contain_v in_o they_o contradiction_n to_o cavil_n and_o to_o play_v on_o both_o side_n those_o that_o understand_v theologie_n say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n that_o a_o man_n may_v always_o refuse_v divine_a inspiration_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o public_a and_o ancient_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n et_fw-la ad_fw-la te_fw-la nostras_fw-la etiam_fw-la rebel_n compelle_fw-fr propitius_fw-la uoluntate_n which_o be_v not_o fit_a we_o shall_v say_v be_v a_o vain_a desire_n but_o that_o it_o be_v make_v by_o faith_n as_o s._n james_n say_v and_o grant_v by_o god_n to_o his_o elect_a they_o add_v that_o one_o can_v no_o more_o say_v with_o s._n paul_n that_o it_o come_v not_o from_o man_n which_o do_v separate_v the_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n from_o those_o of_o god_n mercy_n that_o which_o separate_v be_v that_o humane_a non_fw-la nihil_fw-la omnino_fw-la many_o do_v consider_v that_o place_n of_o the_o seven_o chapter_n where_o it_o be_v say_v justice_n be_v give_v by_o measure_n according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n and_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o receiver_n both_o which_o thing_n can_v be_v true_a for_o if_o it_o please_v god_n to_o give_v more_o to_o he_o that_o be_v less_o dispose_v it_o will_v not_o be_v by_o measure_n of_o the_o disposition_n and_o if_o it_o be_v by_o the_o measure_n of_o that_o there_o be_v always_o the_o motive_n by_o which_o god_n work_v and_o do_v not_o use_v his_o good_a pleasure_n they_o marvel_v that_o those_o be_v condemn_v who_o say_v that_o the_o precept_n of_o god_n be_v impossible_a to_o be_v keep_v see_v that_o the_o same_o council_n in_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o second_o session_n exhort_v the_o faithful_a assemble_v in_o trent_n that_o repent_v confess_v and_o communicate_v they_o shall_v observe_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n quantum_fw-la quisquis_fw-la poterit_fw-la which_o modification_n will_v be_v impious_a if_o the_o justify_v can_v keep_v they_o absolute_o and_o they_o note_v that_o the_o same_o word_n praecepta_fw-la be_v there_o to_o take_v away_o all_o cavil_n those_o that_o be_v read_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a story_n say_v that_o in_o all_o the_o counsel_n hold_v in_o the_o church_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n until_o now_o there_o be_v never_o so_o many_o article_n decide_v as_o in_o this_o session_n only_o in_o which_o aristotle_n have_v a_o great_a part_n by_o have_v exact_o distinguish_v all_o the_o kind_n of_o cause_n which_o if_o he_o have_v not_o do_v we_o have_v want_v many_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o politician_n also_o though_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o examinematter_n of_o religion_n but_o simple_o follow_v they_o yet_o find_v matter_n of_o discourse_n in_o this_o decree_n for_o see_v in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n the_o obligation_n of_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n and_o the_o same_o reply_v in_o the_o twenty_o canon_n they_o be_v scandalize_v because_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o obligation_n to_o the_o commandment_n of_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n they_o say_v that_o obedience_n unto_o these_o be_v more_o plain_o set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o old_a law_n be_v full_a of_o it_o that_o the_o doctrine_n be_v clear_a in_o the_o new_a testament_n express_v and_o handle_v at_o large_a by_o christ_n himself_o by_o saint_n peter_n and_o saint_n paul_n that_o there_o be_v find_v a_o express_a obligation_n to_o hear_v the_o church_n but_o none_o express_v to_o obey_v it_o he_o be_v obey_v who_o command_v of_o his_o own_o power_n and_o he_o be_v hear_v who_o do_v promulgate_v that_o which_o belong_v to_o another_o man_n neither_o be_v these_o man_n satisfy_v with_o the_o excuse_n that_o the_o commandment_n of_o prince_n be_v include_v in_o those_o of_o god_n and_o that_o obedience_n be_v due_a unto_o they_o because_o god_n have_v command_v they_o shall_v be_v obey_v but_o they_o reply_v that_o by_o this_o reason_n the_o church_n rather_o ought_v to_o be_v omit_v and_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v express_v and_o the_o prince_n pass_v over_o in_o silence_n to_o breed_v according_a to_o the_o ancient_a scope_n of_o the_o ecclesiastique_n that_o pernicious_a opinion_n that_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v they_o for_o conscience_n sake_n and_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n only_o for_o fear_n of_o temporal_a punishment_n and_o that_o otherwise_o their_o commandment_n may_v be_v transgress_v without_o respect_n and_o so_o to_o cause_v every_o government_n to_o be_v hate_v account_v tyrannical_a and_o subvert_v and_o by_o describe_v the_o subjection_n unto_o priest_n to_o be_v the_o only_a principal_a way_n to_o gain_v heaven_n to_o draw_v all_o jurisdiction_n to_o themselves_o and_o by_o consequence_n all_o authority_n the_o decree_n of_o reformation_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o mere_a illusion_n for_o to_o trust_v in_o god_n and_o the_o pope_n that_o provision_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o person_n worthy_a to_o govern_v the_o church_n belong_v rather_o to_o he_o that_o pray_v then_o to_o he_o that_o reform_v to_o renew_v the_o ancient_a canon_n with_o one_o word_n only_o and_o one_o so_o general_a be_v more_o to_o confirm_v the_o disuse_n of_o they_o but_o if_o they_o will_v restore_v they_o in_o earnest_n they_o shall_v remove_v the_o cause_n which_o have_v bury_v they_o in_o silence_n give_v they_o strength_n by_o penalty_n and_o deputation_n of_o those_o that_o shall_v put_v they_o in_o execution_n and_o shall_v use_v other_o mean_n which_o do_v revive_v and_o preserve_v law_n in_o fine_a it_o be_v say_v to_o have_v do_v nothing_o but_o establish_v that_o one_o may_v be_v absent_a all_o the_o year_n by_o lose_v half_o the_o revenue_n or_o rather_o one_o be_v teach_v how_o he_o may_v not_o reside_v eleven_o month_n and_o more_o without_o any_o punishment_n by_o interpose_v those_o thirty_o day_n or_o few_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o other_o time_n of_o the_o year_n and_o that_o the_o decree_n be_v whole_o destroy_v with_o the_o exception_n of_o just_a and_o reasonable_a cause_n which_o no_o man_n be_v so_o simple_a as_o not_o to_o find_v be_v to_o have_v judge_n for_o who_o it_o will_v be_v profitable_a not_o to_o have_v residency_n practise_v this_o place_n require_v that_o mention_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o a_o particular_a accident_n which_o then_o begin_v though_o it_o end_v not_o until_o after_o four_o month_n belong_v whole_o to_o the_o present_a session_n &_o make_v know_v what_o the_o council_n be_v and_o in_o what_o estimation_n it_o be_v have_v by_o those_o that_o assist_v in_o it_o for_o the_o understanding_n whereof_o i_o will_v repeat_v that_o friar_n dominicus_n soto_n who_o have_v as_o have_v be_v say_v a_o great_a part_n in_o the_o synod_n in_o frame_v the_o decree_n of_o original_a sin_n and_o justification_n have_v note_v all_o the_o opinion_n and_o reason_n use_v in_o divide_v soto_n and_o catarinus_n publish_v book_n one_o against_o another_o concern_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o council_n and_o the_o father_n be_v much_o divide_v those_o discussion_n think_v to_o communicate_v they_o unto_o the_o world_n and_o to_o draw_v the_o word_n of_o the_o decree_n to_o his_o own_o meaning_n print_v a_o book_n contain_v the_o whole_a together_o and_o do_v entitle_v it_o de_fw-fr natura_fw-la &_o gratia_fw-la and_o do_v dedicate_v
it_o with_o a_o epistle_n to_o the_o council_n to_o be_v as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o dedication_n a_o commentary_n of_o the_o two_o foresay_a decree_n come_v to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o certainty_n of_o grace_n he_o say_v in_o a_o long_a discourse_n that_o the_o synod_n have_v declare_v that_o a_o man_n can_v know_v he_o have_v grace_n by_o so_o great_a certain_a 〈…〉_o e_o as_o be_v that_o of_o faith_n exclude_v all_o doubt_n catarinus_n new_o make_v bishop_n of_o minori_fw-la have_v defend_v the_o contrary_a and_o still_o persevere_v do_v print_v a_o little_a book_n with_o a_o epistle_n dedicatory_a to_o the_o same_o synod_n the_o scope_n whereof_o be_v to_o maintain_v that_o the_o counsel_n meaning_n be_v not_o to_o condemn_v the_o opinion_n of_o he_o that_o say_v a_o just_a man_n may_v know_v he_o have_v grace_n as_o certain_o as_o he_o know_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v true_a yea_o that_o the_o council_n have_v decide_v that_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v it_o because_o in_o the_o six_o and_o twenty_o canon_n it_o have_v condemn_v he_o that_o say_v that_o the_o just_a man_n ought_v not_o to_o hope_v for_o and_o expect_v a_o reward_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o that_o ought_v to_o hope_v as_o a_o just_a man_n shall_v know_v he_o be_v so_o in_o this_o contrariety_n of_o opinion_n both_o writing_n affirmative_o to_o the_o council_n either_o of_o they_o do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o his_o opinion_n be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o synod_n but_o afterward_o write_v also_o and_o print_v apology_n and_o antipology_n make_v complaint_n to_o the_o synod_n the_o one_o of_o the_o other_o of_o attribute_v that_o to_o it_o which_o it_o never_o say_v bring_v diverse_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n to_o prove_v their_o own_o opinion_n who_o bare_a witness_n some_o for_o one_o some_o for_o another_o so_o that_o the_o father_n be_v all_o divide_v into_o two_o part_n except_o some_o good_a prelate_n who_o as_o neutral_n say_v that_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o difference_n but_o give_v consent_n to_o the_o decree_n in_o the_o form_n as_o it_o be_v publish_v because_o both_o the_o party_n be_v agree_v the_o legate_n santa_n croce_n do_v testify_v for_o catarinus_n monte_fw-fr say_fw-la he_o be_v of_o a_o three_o party_n this_o seem_v to_o put_v all_o man_n out_o of_o hope_n to_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o council_n see_v the_o principal_a man_n that_o be_v present_a in_o it_o do_v not_o agree_v and_o it_o do_v raise_v a_o difficulty_n what_o that_o synod_n be_v that_o determine_v the_o article_n unto_o which_o soto_n and_o catarinus_n do_v write_v and_o appeal_v each_o think_v it_o be_v on_o his_o side_n so_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o either_o one_o of_o they_o or_o both_o shall_v be_v deceive_v and_o what_o shall_v one_o think_v of_o the_o other_o when_o it_o so_o happen_v to_o these_o it_o may_v be_v say_v it_o be_v the_o aggregate_v of_o all_o together_o unto_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v assistance_n make_v it_o to_o determine_v the_o truth_n though_o not_o understand_v by_o he_o that_o do_v determine_v it_o as_o cataphas_n do_v prophesy_v because_o he_o be_v high_a priest_n not_o understand_v the_o pprophecy_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o bitonco_n say_v in_o his_o sermon_n but_o this_o answer_n have_v two_o opposition_n the_o one_o that_o god_n make_v the_o reprobate_n and_o infidel_n prophesy_v without_o understanding_n but_o the_o faithful_a by_o illuminate_v their_o mind_n the_o other_o that_o the_o divine_n do_v uniform_o say_v that_o counsel_n do_v not_o deliberate_v of_o faith_n by_o divine_a inspiration_n but_o by_o humane_a disquisition_n which_o the_o spirit_n do_v assist_v to_o keep_v they_o from_o error_n so_o that_o they_o can_v determine_v without_o understand_v the_o disquisition_n counsel_n do_v deliberate_a of_o faith_n not_o by_o divine_a inspiration_n but_o by_o humane_a disquisition_n matter_n perhaps_o he_o shall_v hit_v upon_o the_o truth_n that_o shall_v say_v that_o debate_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n in_o frame_v the_o decree_n every_o party_n do_v refuse_v word_n contrary_a to_o his_o opinion_n and_o all_o rest_v in_o those_o which_o he_o think_v may_v be_v fit_v to_o his_o own_o meaning_n so_o that_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o matter_n become_v capable_a of_o diverse_a interpretation_n but_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v to_o resolve_v the_o doubt_n propose_v and_o to_o find_v what_o the_o counsel_n be_v because_o it_o be_v to_o give_v it_o unity_n of_o word_n and_o contrariety_n of_o meaning_n but_o that_o which_o have_v be_v relate_v in_o this_o opinion_n all_o agree_v in_o condemn_v the_o lutheran_n opinion_n particular_a and_o perhaps_o do_v happen_v in_o many_o matter_n occur_v not_o in_o condemn_v the_o lutheran_n opinion_n 〈…〉_o do_v agree_v with_o a_o exquisite_a unity_n one_o advertisement_n of_o the_o sante_fw-it catarinus_n concern_v his_o ma_fw-fr 〈…〉_o write_v catarinus_n a_o advertisement_n give_v by_o catarinus_n to_o the_o synod_n in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d book_n be_v not_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o author_n 〈◊〉_d ve_v not_o to_o be_v defraud_v of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈…〉_o that_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d pugnancie_n to_o say_v that_o 〈…〉_o certain_a he_o have_v it_o because_o no_o man_n can_v receive_v a_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d which_o he_o know_v not_o to_o be_v give_v he_o and_o without_o be_v sure_o he_o have_v receive_v it_o 〈◊〉_d but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o council_n the_o day_n after_o the_o session_n a_o general_a congregation_n be_v assemble_v to_o deliberate_v of_o and_o put_v in_o order_n the_o matter_n to_o be_v digest_v in_o the_o next_o session_n and_o for_o matter_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v already_o determine_v to_o follow_v the_o confession_n of_o ausburg_n the_o first_o point_n be_v of_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n which_o the_o lutheran_n say_v be_v authority_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n and_o some_o rest_n upon_o the_o first_o part_n do_v propose_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n shall_v be_v handle_v declare_v all_o those_o function_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a which_o god_n have_v give_v they_o over_o the_o faithful_a and_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o lutheran_n and_o this_o do_v general_o please_v the_o prelate_n because_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o a_o easy_a understanding_n without_o any_o crabbedness_n of_o the_o school_n and_o where_o themselves_o may_v have_v a_o part_n but_o it_o be_v not_o grateful_a to_o the_o divine_n because_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o handle_v in_o the_o school_n so_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v nothing_o to_o dispute_v and_o must_v refer_v themselves_o for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o the_o canonist_n they_o say_v that_o the_o augustanes_n do_v not_o handle_v all_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n but_o that_o only_a of_o preach_v whereof_o there_o be_v as_o much_o decree_v in_o the_o last_o session_n as_o be_v sufficient_a but_o in_o the_o second_o part_n there_o be_v matter_n that_o do_v cohere_v with_o justification_n pope_n the_o subject_n of_o the_o next_o session_n be_v the_o sacrament_n the_o legate_n desire_v to_o prevent_v y_z e_z handle_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n and_o pope_n that_o be_v the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o be_v justify_v and_o say_v it_o be_v more_o fit_a to_o make_v these_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o next_o session_n the_o legate_n and_o their_o dependent_n adhere_v hereunto_o in_o show_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n but_o indeed_o for_o another_o more_o potent_a because_o in_o the_o other_o consideration_n they_o may_v have_v handle_v the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o propose_v many_o hard_a matter_n not_o fit_a to_o be_v move_v have_v resolve_v to_o handle_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n it_o be_v consider_v that_o it_o be_v various_a and_o ample_a not_o possible_a to_o be_v comprehend_v in_o a_o session_n nor_o easy_a to_o be_v determine_v into_o how_o many_o part_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v divide_v the_o augustans_fw-la make_v it_o short_a by_o take_v away_o four_o sacrament_n of_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o treat_v more_o exact_o to_o reestablish_v they_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v good_a to_o begin_v to_o discuss_v the_o sacrament_n in_o general_a &_o charge_n be_v give_v to_o put_v in_o order_n the_o article_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o lutheran_n doctrine_n descend_v also_o to_o the_o sacrament_n in_o particular_a of_o as_o many_o as_o seem_v easy_a to_o discuss_v and_o that_o the_o reformation_n may_v follow_v the_o definition_n of_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n the_o abuse_n occur_v in_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v put_v together_o ordain_v a_o congregation_n of_o prelate_n and_o canonist_n to_o discourse_n of_o the_o remedy_n and_o to_o frame_v the_o decree_n with_o order_n that_o if_o they_o both_o happen_v on_o the_o
here_o against_o their_o will_n and_o because_o of_o the_o departure_n of_o many_o and_o protestation_n of_o other_o by_o who_o departure_n the_o council_n will_v be_v dissolve_v and_o for_o other_o cause_n allege_v by_o the_o father_n notorious_o true_a and_o lawful_a do_v it_o please_v you_o to_o declare_v that_o for_o the_o security_n of_o the_o prelate_n life_n and_o prosecution_n of_o the_o council_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v transfer_v to_o bolonia_n and_o be_v now_o transfer_v and_o that_o the_o session_n intimate_v for_o the_o 21._o of_o april_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v and_o all_o thing_n prosecute_v there_o until_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n shall_v think_v fit_a to_o reduce_v it_o into_o this_o or_o some_o other_o place_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o emperor_n the_o french_a king_n and_o other_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n the_o next_o day_n the_o session_n be_v hold_v and_o the_o decree_n read_v 35._o bishop_n and_o bolonia_n a_o session_n be_v hold_v to_o read_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o translation_n to_o bolonia_n three_o general_n do_v assent_v but_o the_o cardinal_n pacceco_n and_o 17._o other_o bishop_n oppose_v among_o those_o that_o consent_v there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o the_o emperor_n subject_n but_o michael_n saracenus_n a_o napolitan_a archb._n of_o matera_fw-la but_o among_o those_o that_o consent_v not_o there_o be_v claudius_n della_fw-it guische_n bishop_n of_o mirpois_n and_o martelli_n bishop_n of_o fiesole_n and_o marcus_n viguerius_n bishop_n of_o sintgaglia_n who_o the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n do_v upbraid_v that_o his_o uncle_n be_v draw_v from_o a_o base_a estate_n to_o the_o height_n of_o the_o cardinality_n from_o whence_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o house_n and_o his_o own_o bishopric_n do_v proceed_v he_o do_v ill_o requite_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n for_o answer_n he_o use_v the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n god_n be_v not_o mock_v the_o legate_n depart_v with_o the_o cross_n carry_v before_o they_o accompany_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o faction_n with_o ceremony_n and_o prayer_n the_o imperialist_n be_v command_v by_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n not_o to_o depart_v until_o his_o majesty_n be_v inform_v and_o give_v they_o order_n in_o rome_n the_o court_n be_v glad_a they_o be_v deliver_v from_o danger_n for_o there_o be_v already_o great_a confusion_n and_o sale_n make_v by_o the_o possessor_n of_o many_o benefice_n who_o seek_v to_o unburthen_v themselves_o but_o so_o as_o that_o they_o will_v lose_v no_o commodity_n the_o pope_n say_v that_o have_v give_v his_o legate_n power_n to_o translate_v the_o council_n and_o promise_v to_o ratify_v what_o they_o shall_v determine_v and_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v execute_v and_o they_o have_v judge_v the_o infection_n of_o the_o air_n to_o be_v a_o lawful_a cause_n he_o pope_n which_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o choose_v but_o approve_v it_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o the_o mayor_n part_n of_o the_o prelate_n do_v consent_v but_o none_o be_v so_o simple_a as_o not_o to_o believe_v that_o all_o be_v do_v by_o his_o commandment_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o nothing_o how_o little_a soever_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o council_n without_o order_n first_o have_v from_o rome_n for_o which_o purpose_n letter_n come_v once_o every_o week_n and_o some_o week_n twice_o it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o a_o matter_n of_o that_o importance_n be_v hatch_v in_o the_o legate_n brain_n beside_o only_o to_o bring_v so_o many_o person_n into_o a_o city_n so_o jealous_a as_o bolonia_n without_o consent_n of_o the_o prince_n thereof_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o the_o legate_n will_v never_o have_v many_o the_o date_n of_o the_o bull_n be_v suspect_v by_o many_o attempt_v many_o do_v believe_v that_o the_o bull_n have_v not_o a_o true_a date_n but_o be_v new_o make_v though_o the_o date_n be_v old_a and_o with_o the_o name_n of_o cardinal_n poole_n to_o give_v great_a reputation_n otherwise_o that_o clause_n in_o which_o authority_n be_v give_v unto_o two_o of_o they_o the_o other_o be_v absent_a to_o translate_v the_o council_n will_v seem_v a_o kind_n of_o prophecy_n that_o poole_n shall_v depart_v a_o year_n after_o and_o the_o liberty_n to_o transfer_v it_o to_o what_o city_n they_o list_v seem_v too_o large_a and_o improbable_a consider_v the_o suspicion_n always_o fix_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v in_o a_o unfaithful_a city_n show_v more_o than_o ever_o by_o pope_n paul_n when_o he_o do_v call_v it_o so_o that_o it_o be_v incredible_a that_o he_o will_v unnecessary_o expose_v himself_o to_o the_o discretion_n of_o another_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a weight_n yet_o follow_v the_o note_n which_o i_o have_v see_v as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o i_o assure_v myself_o that_o it_o be_v make_v two_o year_n and_o send_v 18._o month_n before_o this_o time_n but_o that_o which_o can_v not_o be_v conceal_v and_o which_o do_v scandalize_v free_a it_o appear_v by_o the_o bull_n that_o the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a every_o one_o be_v that_o by_o that_o bull_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o council_n be_v in_o servitude_n for_o if_o the_o two_o legate_n can_v command_v all_o the_o prelate_n at_o once_o to_o part_v from_o trent_n and_o compel_v they_o by_o punishment_n and_o censure_n let_v any_o man_n say_v that_o can_v what_o liberty_n they_o have_v the_o emperor_n hear_v the_o news_n be_v much_o translation_n the_o emperor_n be_v offend_v with_o the_o translation_n displease_v because_o it_o seem_v he_o be_v despise_v and_o because_o he_o see_v a_o weapon_n take_v out_o of_o his_o hand_n by_o manage_v whereof_o according_a to_o opportunity_n he_o think_v to_o set_v religion_n at_o peace_n in_o germany_n and_o so_o to_o put_v it_o under_o his_o die_v the_o french_a king_n die_v obedience_n the_o news_n come_v not_o to_o the_o french_a king_n who_o the_o 21._o of_o the_o same_o month_n change_v this_o life_n for_o a_o better_a the_o three_o book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o law_n of_o history_n 2._o 1547_o paul_n 3_o charles_n 5._o edward_z 6._o henry_n 2._o and_o how_o they_o differ_v from_o annal_n and_o diaries_n i_o work_n the_o censure_n of_o the_o author_n concern_v this_o work_n know_v likewise_o that_o the_o narration_n of_o uniform_a accident_n breed_v satiety_n in_o the_o writer_n and_o tediousness_n in_o the_o reader_n and_o that_o to_o recount_v small_a matter_n too_o particular_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o foolish_a knowledge_n yet_o i_o observe_v frequent_a reply_n and_o little_a narration_n in_o homer_n and_o that_o in_o the_o expedition_n of_o cyrus_n the_o young_a xenophon_n do_v more_o ravish_v and_o instruct_v the_o mind_n by_o recite_v the_o serious_a and_o merry_a discourse_n of_o the_o soldier_n then_o by_o relate_v the_o action_n and_o counsel_n of_o prince_n i_o be_o of_o opinion_n that_o every_o matter_n have_v his_o proper_a form_n and_o that_o this_o of_o i_o can_v be_v compose_v with_o ordinary_a rule_n i_o assure_v myself_o that_o this_o work_n will_v be_v read_v by_o few_o and_o be_v of_o a_o short_a life_n not_o so_o much_o for_o want_v of_o form_n as_o for_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o subject_n and_o i_o be_o so_o persuade_v by_o that_o which_o i_o see_v happen_v in_o the_o like_a thing_n but_o not_o regard_v perpetuity_n or_o continuance_n of_o time_n it_o shall_v suffice_v i_o that_o it_o will_v please_v some_o one_o to_o who_o i_o will_v show_v it_o because_o i_o know_v he_o will_v make_v use_n of_o it_o and_o i_o be_o assure_v that_o for_o hereafter_o that_o will_v happen_v to_o it_o which_o the_o coniuncture_n shall_v comport_v the_o prelate_n remain_v in_o trent_n be_v in_o great_a suspense_n until_o letter_n trent_n the_o emperor_n prelate_n remain_v in_o trent_n come_v from_o the_o emperor_n commend_v they_o for_o contradict_v the_o translation_n and_o abide_v in_o trent_n with_o express_a order_n not_o to_o part_v from_o the_o city_n they_o consult_v among_o themselves_o whether_o they_o shall_v do_v any_o conciliarie_n bolonia_n write_n pass_v between_o the_o prelate_n of_o trent_n and_o of_o bolonia_n act_n and_o it_o be_v uniform_o resolve_v that_o it_o will_v make_v a_o schism_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o to_o be_v attempt_v but_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o study_v the_o point_n and_o to_o expect_v what_o opportunity_n will_v bring_v there_o pass_v some_o writing_n between_o the_o divine_n of_o trent_n and_o of_o bolonia_n these_o do_v with_o affectation_n call_v it_o the_o synod_n of_o bolonia_n and_o those_o the_o holy_a synod_n be_v it_o wheresoever_o it_o will_n and_o some_o of_o they_o remain_v still_o in_o print_n in_o bolonia_n the_o legate_n and_o other_o cardinal_n of_o rome_n make_v
to_o the_o book_n to_o this_o purpose_n that_o aim_v at_o the_o peace_n of_o germany_n he_o find_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o make_v it_o until_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n be_v compose_v from_o whence_o all_o the_o dissension_n and_o heartburning_n have_v rise_v and_o perceive_v that_o a_o general_a council_n in_o germany_n be_v the_o only_a remedy_n herein_o he_o have_v cause_v it_o to_o begin_v in_o trent_n and_o persuade_v all_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o adhere_v and_o submit_v unto_o it_o but_o think_v not_o to_o leave_v thing_n in_o suspense_n and_o confusion_n until_o the_o council_n be_v celebrate_v a_o form_n be_v present_v to_o he_o by_o some_o great_a and_o zealous_a person_n which_o some_o learned_a have_v examine_v by_o his_o appointment_n they_o have_v find_v it_o not_o abhor_v from_o the_o catholic_a religion_n it_o be_v understand_v in_o a_o good_a sense_n except_o two_o article_n the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o marriage_n of_o priest_n therefore_o he_o require_v the_o state_n who_o until_o then_o have_v observe_v the_o law_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n to_o persevere_v in_o they_o and_z as_o they_o have_v promise_v not_o to_o change_v any_o thing_n and_o those_o that_o have_v innovate_v either_o to_o return_v to_o antiquity_n or_o to_o conform_v themselves_o to_o that_o confession_n if_o in_o any_o thing_n they_o have_v exceed_v it_o and_o to_o be_v content_v with_o it_o not_o teach_v write_a or_o print_v to_o the_o contrary_a but_o expect_v only_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o council_n and_o because_o in_o the_o last_o point_n leave_n be_v give_v to_o take_v away_o superstitious_a ceremony_n he_o reserve_v the_o declaration_n thereof_o to_o himself_o and_o of_o all_o other_o difficulty_n that_o shall_v arise_v the_o fifteen_o of_o fear_n with_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v distaste_v though_o they_o accept_v it_o for_o fear_n may_v the_o book_n be_v read_v in_o the_o public_a assembly_n the_o voice_n be_v not_o take_v according_a to_o the_o use_n but_o only_o the_o elector_n do_v rise_v and_o thank_v the_o emperor_n in_o the_o name_n of_o they_o all_o who_o take_v the_o thanks_n for_o a_o general_a approbation_n and_o assent_n no_o man_n speak_v then_o a_o word_n but_o the_o prince_n who_o do_v long_o since_o follow_v the_o confession_n of_o ausburg_n when_o they_o whereby_o themselves_o do_v say_v they_o can_v not_o accept_v it_o and_o some_o of_o the_o city_n speak_v word_n which_o signify_v the_o same_o though_o not_o open_o for_o fear_v of_o the_o emperor_n the_o book_n be_v print_v in_o latin_a and_o dutch_a by_o order_n from_o caesar_n and_o afterward_o translate_v and_o print_v in_o italian_a and_o french_a beside_o this_o the_o emperor_n publish_v the_o fourteen_o of_o june_n a_o reformation_n head_n the_o emperor_n publish_v a_o reformation_n of_o the_o clegie_n contain_v 23_o head_n of_o the_o clergy_n which_o have_v be_v mature_o digest_v and_o collect_v by_o learned_a and_o religious_a man_n it_o contain_v 23._o point_n of_o ordination_n and_o election_n of_o minister_n of_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n of_o the_o office_n of_o dean_n and_o canon_n of_o canonical_a hour_n of_o monastery_n of_o school_n and_o university_n of_o hospital_n of_o the_o office_n of_o a_o preacher_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o baptism_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o confirmation_n of_o ceremony_n of_o the_o mass_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o penance_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o extreme_a unction_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o matrimony_n of_o ecclesiastical_a ceremony_n of_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n of_o plurality_n of_o benefice_n of_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o people_n of_o visitation_n of_o counsel_n of_o excommunication_n in_o these_o point_n be_v contain_v about_o a_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o precept_n so_o just_a and_o full_a of_o equity_n that_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v never_o any_o reformation_n before_o be_v make_v more_o exact_a and_o less_o partial_a without_o cavil_n and_o trap_n to_o ensnare_v the_o unaduised_a he_o can_v not_o easy_o be_v reproove_v and_o if_o it_o have_v be_v make_v by_o the_o prelate_n only_o it_o will_v not_o have_v displease_v at_o rome_n except_o in_o two_o point_n where_o it_o give_v authority_n to_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o in_o some_o other_o place_n where_o it_o meddle_v with_o dispensation_n and_o exemption_n and_o other_o thing_n reserve_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o be_v make_v by_o the_o emperor_n authority_n it_o seem_v more_o unsupportable_a than_o the_o interim_n for_o it_o be_v a_o fundamental_a interim_n which_o be_v make_v by_o secular_a authority_n be_v judge_v in_o rome_n more_o unsupportable_a than_o the_o interim_n maxim_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o secular_o of_o what_o degree_n or_o honesty_n soever_o can_v give_v a_o law_n to_o the_o clergy_n though_o to_o a_o good_a end_n but_o because_o they_o can_v not_o choose_v they_o support_v the_o tyranny_n for_o so_o they_o say_v which_o they_o be_v not_o then_o able_a to_o resist_v a_o little_a after_o the_o emperor_n give_v order_n that_o the_o diocesan_n synod_n shall_v synod_n the_o emperor_n give_v order_n for_o diocesan_n synod_n be_v hold_v at_o saint_n martin_n day_n and_o the_o provincial_n before_o lent_n and_o because_o the_o prelate_n desire_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v consent_v at_o the_o least_o to_o those_o point_n which_o seem_v not_o to_o diminish_v hisauthority_n the_o emperor_n offer_v they_o by_o his_o hand-writing_n date_v the_o eighteen_o of_o july_n to_o use_v all_o diligence_n to_o persuade_v his_o holiness_n not_o to_o be_v want_v in_o his_o duty_n this_o reformation_n be_v print_v in_o many_o catholic_a place_n of_o germany_n and_o also_o in_o milan_n the_o same_o year_n by_o innocentius_n ciconiaria_n the_o diet_n of_o ausburg_n end_v the_o last_o diet._n conclude_v the_o diet._n of_o june_n and_o the_o recess_n be_v publish_v in_o which_o the_o emperor_n promise_v that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v continue_v in_o trent_n and_o that_o he_o will_v take_v order_n trent_n and_o promise_v the_o resumption_n of_o the_o council_n in_o trent_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v reassume_v quick_o in_o which_o case_n he_o command_v all_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n to_o be_v present_a and_o those_o of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n to_o go_v thither_o with_o his_o safe_a conduct_n where_o all_o shall_v be_v handle_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n and_o themselves_o shall_v be_v hear_v the_o cardinal_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o other_o prelate_n jealous_a 〈…〉_o beginning_n of_o confession_n and_o reformation_n make_v and_o 〈…〉_o the_o pope_n authority_n will_v be_v 〈◊〉_d out_o of_o germany_n 〈…〉_o emp_n 〈…〉_o 〈◊〉_d ●he_v po_n 〈…〉_o to_o 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o the_o decree_n 〈…〉_o it_o will_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o fa●ili_fw-la 〈…〉_o who_o still_o 〈…〉_o pope_n will_v 〈…〉_o willing_o when_o they_o see_v ●i_n au_o 〈…〉_o ti●_n 〈…〉_o the_o 〈◊〉_d ●eeing_v 〈◊〉_d swade_v that_o when_o the_o stir_n of_o religion_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d germany_n 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o ●is_fw-la obedience_n do_v 〈…〉_o think_v th●_n 〈…〉_o shall_v be_v 〈◊〉_d plea●ed_v high_a 〈…〉_o he_o 〈…〉_o ●ee_o 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o pope_n of_o what_o be_v 〈…〉_o be_v do_v foe_o 〈…〉_o invite_v 〈…〉_o ●●nd_v 〈…〉_o the_o bishop_n germany_n the_o pope_n send_v the_o bishop_n of_o fan●_n for_o his_o nuncio_n into_o germany_n of_o to_o 〈…〉_o will_v 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o propose_v the_o restitution_n of_o pia_n 〈…〉_o and_o to_o 〈…〉_o spaniard_n froth●_n trent_n but_o have_v receive_v the_o first_o answer_n from_o 〈…〉_o and_o con_v 〈…〉_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cardinal_n he_o soon_o resolve_v that_o it_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d for_o he_o to_o send_v a_o minister_n to_o execute_v the_o emperor_n 〈◊〉_d yet_o for_o the_o reason_n which_o move_v the_o cardinal_n of_o ausburg_n he_o take_v a_o middle_a way_n to_o send_v nuncij_fw-la nor_o for_o that_o and_o which_o the_o emperor_n deseign_v but_o to_o grant_v absolution_n and_o grace_n think_v it_o will_v do_v miracle_n for_o maintenance_n of_o his_o authority_n without_o prejudice_n of_o consent_v that_o another_o shall_v assume_v the_o power_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o belong_v only_o to_o himself_o therefore_o after_o 〈◊〉_d he_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o verona_n and_o ferentino_n for_o his_o bull._n and_o afterward_o two_o bishop_n more_o to_o who_o he_o give_v ample_a faculty_n by_o his_o bull._n nuncij_fw-la into_o germany_n to_o who_o by_o advice_n of_o the_o cardinal_n he_o direct_v a_o bull_n date_v the_o last_o of_o august_n give_v they_o commission_n to_o declare_v to_o all_o that_o will_v return_v to_o the_o catholic_a truth_n that_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o embrace_v they_o and_o will_v not_o be_v hard_o in_o pardon_v they_o so_o that_o they_o
council_n of_o pavia_n alone_o without_o the_o presence_n of_o any_o prelate_n the_o four_o book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o legate_n and_o nuncij_fw-la be_v come_v to_o trent_n accompany_v trent_n the_o presidenes_n of_o the_o council_n and_o some_o prelate_n strive_v in_o trent_n with_o some_o prelate_n who_o follow_v they_o from_o rome_n and_o some_o other_o be_v arrive_v who_o have_v be_v 〈…〉_o llcit_v by_o the_o pope_n come_v thither_o a_o little_a after_o they_o assemble_v the_o foresay_a day_n with_o the_o want_v ceremony_n in_o the_o usual_a place_n play_v within_o the_o cathedral_n church_n which_o be_v not_o pull_v down_o where_o the_o archbishop_n of_o torre_n sing_v mass_n and_o the_o secretary_n read_v the_o pope_n bull_n of_o the_o convocation_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o precedent_n and_o he_o that_o say_v mass_n read_v the_o decree_n interrogatory_o please_v the_o father_n that_o according_a to_o the_o pope_n letter_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n shall_v be_v resume_v and_o prosecute_v and_o all_o have_v give_v their_o voice_n he_o say_v again_o please_v it_o you_o that_o the_o next_o session_n september_n the_o next_o session_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o first_o of_o september_n be_v hold_v the_o first_o of_o september_n next_o whereunto_o all_o agree_v and_o the_o cardinal_n prime_a precedent_n conclude_v by_o the_o consent_n and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o synod_n that_o the_o council_n be_v begin_v and_o shall_v be_v prosecute_v nothing_o else_o be_v do_v that_o day_n nor_o the_o next_o though_o the_o prelate_n be_v often_o assemble_v in_o the_o legate_n house_n because_o the_o congregation_n have_v no_o form_n there_o be_v no_o divine_n only_o the_o thing_n dispared_a in_o 〈◊〉_d be_v read_v to_o make_v the_o deliberation_n of_o that_o winch_v be_v to_o be_v handle_v more_o 〈◊〉_d especial_o in_o matter_n of_o reformation_n which_o be_v esteem_v to_o be_v of_o the_o great_a moment_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o month_n the_o pope_n send_v 〈…〉_o to_o the_o swiss_n the_o pope_n send_v a_o nunci●_n to_o the_o swiss_n swiss_n who_o before_o have_v be_v the_o nuncio_n of_o pope_n paul_n to_o that_o nation_n principal_o to_o provide_v that_o the_o french_a king_n may_v not_o have_v soldier_n from_o they_o and_o to_o obtain_v of_o they_o a_o leule_fw-fr the_o affair_n of_o parma_n and_o upon_o that_o occasion_n he_o write_v unto_o they_o the_o seven_o and_o twenty_o of_o may_n that_o as_o he_o have_v take_v the_o name_n of_o julius_n the_o second_o so_o affectionate_a to_o they_o so_o he_o will_v follow_v his_o example_n in_o love_v they_o and_o use_v 〈◊〉_d assistance_n which_o he_o have_v begin_v to_o do_v by_o take_v a_o guard_n of_o their_o nation_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o his_o own_o person_n and_o another_o for_o bolonia_n now_o the_o council_n be_v intimate_v and_o begin_v in_o trent_n the_o first_o of_o may_n he_o pray_v they_o to_o send_v their_o prelate_n against_o the_o first_o of_o september_n when_o the_o second_o session_n shall_v be_v hold_v the_o french_a king_n seek_v to_o persuade_v the_o pope_n by_o term_n his_o ambassador_n that_o he_o have_v upon_o good_a reason_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o defence_n of_o parma_n the_o french_a king_n excuse_v to_o the_o pope_n his_o protection_n of_o parma_n parma_n pray_v he_o to_o be_v content_v with_o it_o and_o to_o show_v he_o that_o do_v otherwise_o and_o prefer_v war_n before_o peace_n he_o shall_v not_o only_o damnify_v italie●_n but_o hinder_v the_o prosecution_n of_o the_o council_n ●or_a cause_n it_o to_o dissolve_v and_o that_o though_o 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o fall_v out_o ye●_n in_o regard_n no_o french_a bishop_n can_v go_v thither_o it_o can_v not_o with_o reason_n be_v call_v a_o general_a council_n the_o pope_n offer_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n el●e_v which_o the_o king_n shall_v desire_v and_o after_o many_o discourse_n it_o be_v represent_v to_o he_o that_o the_o king_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n retire_v and_o that_o in_o case_n his_o holiness_n will_v not_o be_v neutral_a but_o make_v himself_o the_o emperor_n minister_n by_o who_o the_o king_n be_v certain_a that_o he_o be_v guide_v his_o majesty_n will_v be_v force_v to_o use_v those_o remedy_n of_o reason_n and_o fact_n which_o his_o ancestor_n have_v use_v against_o partial_a pope_n the_o pope_n grow_v angry_a or_o feign_a to_o be_v so_o and_o answer_v that_o if_o the_o king_n take_v parma_n angry_a his_o holiness_n be_v angry_a from_o he_o he_o will_v take_v france_n from_o the_o king_n and_o if_o the_o king_n do_v take_v from_o he_o his_o obedience_n he_o will_v take_v from_o the_o king_n the_o commerce_n of_o all_o christendom_n and_o ●he_n speak_v of_o force_n let_v he_o do_v the_o worst_a he_o can_v if_o of_o edict_n and_o prohibition_n and_o such_o thing_n he_o let_v he_o know_v that_o his_o pen_n paper_n and_o ink_n be_v not_o inferior_a but_o though_o the_o pope_n speak_v so_o high_a yet_o he_o be_v afraid_a and_o therefore_o to_o excite_v the_o emperor_n he_o signify_v unto_o he_o by_o his_o nuncio_n the_o bishop_n of_o imola_n who_o he_o have_v send_v in_o place_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o siponto_n all_o these_o discourse_n with_o the_o french_a and_o afterward_o tell_v he_o that_o in_o rome_n there_o be_v doubt_n of_o another_o sack_n in_o regard_n of_o so_o many_o rumour_n of_o the_o turk_n and_o frenchman_n and_o fear_v of_o nationall_n counsel_n therefore_o there_o be_v need_n of_o arm_n to_o prevent_v these_o attempt_n and_o to_o defend_v themselves_o when_o need_v require_v the_o king_n see_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o persuade_v the_o pope_n write_v a_o public_a pope_n the_o french_a king_n make_v preparation_n for_o a_o nationall_n council_n from_o which_o and_o from_o the_o protection_n of_o parma_n he_o be_v dissuade_v by_o the_o pope_n letter_n to_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o kingdom_n as_o well_o in_o france_n as_o elsewhere_o command_v they_o to_o be_v at_o their_o church_n within_o six_o month_n and_o to_o put_v themselves_o in_o order_n there_o for_o a_o nationall_n council_n and_o the_o letter_n be_v present_v to_o those_o also_o who_o be_v in_o rome_n neither_o dare_v the_o pope_n hinder_v they_o for_o fear_n of_o do_v they_o and_o his_o own_o reputation_n more_o hurt_v but_o he_o send_v ascanius_n della_fw-it c●rna_n his_o nephew_n into_o france_n to_o dissuade_v the_o king_n from_o the_o protection_n of_o parma_n to_o make_v he_o understand_v that_o octavius_n farnese_n be_v his_o vassal_n he_o shall_v by_o no_o mean_n endure_v to_o be_v contemn_v by_o he_o in_o regard_n it_o will_v be_v a_o eternal_a infamy_n and_o a_o example_n to_o other_o not_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o pope_n that_o his_o inclination_n to_o france_n and_o his_o majesty_n be_v great_a and_o his_o mind_n averse_a from_o those_o who_o be_v emulous_a of_o he_o and_o that_o this_o be_v know_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n yet_o the_o foresay_a respect_n be_v so_o potent_a that_o if_o his_o m_n tie_n will_v not_o give_v a_o remedy_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v he_o cast_v himself_o into_o the_o arm_n of_o he_o that_o he_o will_v not_o his_o instruction_n also_o be_v that_o if_o the_o king_n will_v not_o be_v persuade_v to_o this_o he_o shall_v pray_v he_o to_o consider_v well_o how_o great_a inconvenience_n a_o nationall_n council_n will_v draw_v after_o it_o and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o beginning_n to_o give_v his_o subject_n licence_n whereof_o he_o will_v repent_v he_o and_o will_v present_o cause_v this_o bad_a effect_n to_o hinder_v the_o general_a council_n which_o will_v be_v the_o great_a offence_n can_v be_v do_v to_o god_n and_o the_o great_a damage_n to_o faith_n and_o the_o church_n he_o pray_v he_o to_o send_v a_o ambassador_n to_o trent_n assure_v he_o he_o shall_v receive_v all_o honour_n and_o respect_n from_o the_o precedent_n and_o all_o the_o prelate_n who_o be_v his_o holiness_n friend_n whereunto_o if_o he_o do_v not_o condescend_v but_o persevere_v in_o maintain_v the_o edict_n he_o shall_v for_o take_v away_o all_o scandal_n propose_v to_o he_o a_o temper_n to_o declare_v that_o his_o meaning_n be_v not_o to_o hinder_v the_o general_a council_n by_o that_o edict_n the_o king_n hear_v the_o ambassage_n show_v also_o that_o his_o honour_n do_v constrain_v resolution_n but_o he_o continue_v firm_a in_o his_o resolution_n he_o to_o continue_v the_o protection_n of_o the_o duke_n and_o to_o maintain_v the_o edict_n but_o with_o such_o word_n as_o make_v it_o plain_o he_o be_v displease_v with_o the_o distaste_v give_v he_o and_o that_o he_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o right_v himself_o and_o to_o answer_v the_o pope_n he_o send_v the_o lord_n of_o monluc_n the_o elect_a of_o bourdeaux_n to_o he_o not_o
hold_v the_o mass_n for_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n or_o do_v say_v it_o do_v not_o help_v the_o live_v and_o the_o dead_a or_o do_v not_o receive_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n or_o do_v condemn_v private_a mass_n or_o the_o ceremony_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n use_v and_o then_o four_o head_n of_o doctrine_n be_v make_v that_o in_o the_o mass_n be_v offer_v a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrifice_n institute_v by_o christ_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o how_o it_o agree_v with_o that_o of_o the_o cross_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o application_n thereof_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o mass_n all_o which_o be_v to_o be_v handle_v against_o christmas_n and_o be_v not_o relate_v here_o particular_o because_o they_o be_v not_o publish_v in_o the_o next_o session_n while_o the_o father_n do_v entertain_v themselves_o in_o the_o business_n of_o the_o council_n negotiation_n the_o ambassador_n of_o wittenberg_n receive_v letter_n from_o their_o prince_n with_o order_n to_o proceed_v in_o their_o negotiation_n the_o ambassador_n of_o wittenberg_n do_v receive_v letter_n from_o their_o prince_n to_o proceed_v and_o to_o present_v their_o doctrine_n in_o the_o best_a manner_n they_o can_v there_o fore_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o montfort_n they_o entreat_v the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n to_o be_v a_o mean_n that_o the_o precedent_n will_v receive_v their_o letter_n assemble_v the_o father_n and_o give_v they_o audience_n the_o cardinal_n promise_v all_o good_a office_n but_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o tell_v the_o legate_n what_o they_o will_v treat_v on_o it_o be_v so_o constitute_v by_o the_o father_n move_v thereunto_o by_o the_o proposition_n make_v by_o the_o abbot_n of_o bellosana_n therefore_o they_o impart_v to_o he_o their_o instruction_n say_v they_o be_v send_v to_o obtain_v a_o safe_a conduct_n for_o their_o theologue_n as_o it_o be_v give_v in_o basill_n to_o the_o bohomians_n and_o to_o propose_v their_o doctrine_n that_o it_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o father_n they_o may_v be_v ready_a to_o confer_v with_o their_o divine_n when_o they_o come_v the_o legate_n receive_v this_o reletion_n from_o the_o cardinal_n impart_v to_o he_o what_o the_o pope_n have_v write_v and_o proposition_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o legate_n to_o their_o proposition_n tell_v he_o that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suffer_v that_o either_o they_o or_o any_o other_o protestant_n shall_v present_v their_o doctrine_n much_o less_o be_v admit_v to_o defend_v it_o inregard_n there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n of_o contention_n that_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o father_n which_o be_v observe_v until_o then_o and_o aught_o to_o be_v continue_v to_o examine_v their_o doctrine_n take_v out_o of_o their_o book_n and_o condemn_v that_o which_o do_v deserve_v it_o if_o the_o protestant_n have_v any_o difficulty_n and_o do_v propose_v it_o humble_o and_o show_v themselves_o willing_a to_o receive_v instruction_n it_o shall_v be_v give_v by_o advice_n of_o the_o council_n therefore_o he_o deny_v absolute_o to_o assemble_v the_o father_n to_o receive_v their_o doctrine_n and_o say_v he_o can_v not_o change_v this_o opinion_n though_o it_o shall_v cost_v he_o his_o life_n for_o alter_v the_o safe_a conduct_n he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o exorbitant_a indignity_n to_o the_o council_n that_o they_o shall_v mistrust_v that_o which_o be_v grant_v and_o that_o to_o treat_v thereof_o be_v a_o unsupportable_a injury_n and_o deserve_v that_o all_o the_o faithful_a shall_v spend_v their_o life_n in_o oppose_v it_o the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n will_v not_o give_v the_o answer_n so_o sharp_a to_o the_o ambassodor_n but_o say_v that_o the_o legate_n be_v angry_a that_o they_o will_v begin_v with_o trent_n i●_n favourable_o relate_v to_o the_o ambsssador_n by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n the_o presentation_n of_o their_o doctrine_n in_o regard_n they_o be_v to_o receive_v from_o their_o superior_n with_o reverence_n and_o obedience_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o prescribe_v it_o to_o other_o with_o such_o a_o unseemliness_n and_o absurdity_n therefore_o he_o advise_v they_o to_o let_v that_o day_n pass_v that_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o legate_n may_v be_v remit_v and_o then_o to_o begin_v with_o some_o other_o point_n that_o afterward_o they_o may_v fall_v upon_o those_o two_o that_o be_v to_o present_v their_o doctrine_n and_o desire_v a_o safe_a conduct_n they_o follow_v this_o counsel_n and_o a_o few_o day_n after_o the_o cardinal_n be_v part_v from_o trent_n they_o desire_v the_o emperor_n ambassador_n to_o persuade_v the_o legate_n to_o receive_v their_o mandate_n and_o hear_v their_o proposition_n that_o understand_v his_o mind_n they_o may_v resolve_v as_o they_o shall_v have_v instruction_n from_o their_o prince_n the_o ambassador_n treat_v with_o the_o legate_n and_o have_v the_o same_o answer_n which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n which_o do_v not_o proceed_v from_o disdain_n but_o from_o a_o resolve_a will_n the_o ambassador_n understand_v the_o legate_n mind_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o business_n can_v not_o then_o take_v place_n and_o know_v that_o to_o relate_v the_o answer_n be_v dishonourable_a for_o the_o emperor_n who_o have_v so_o large_o promise_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v hear_v propose_v free_o and_o confer_v in_o stead_n of_o give_v a_o direct_a answer_n to_o those_o of_o wittenberg_n he_o find_v diverse_a excuse_n to_o gain_v time_n which_o he_o do_v not_o so_o artificial_o though_o he_o be_v a_o spaniard_n but_o that_o they_o be_v discover_v to_o be_v pretence_n not_o to_o give_v a_o plain_a negative_a at_o this_o time_n ambassador_n go_v to_o trent_n from_o argentina_n and_o five_o city_n more_o with_o instruction_n to_o present_v their_o doctrine_n they_o employ_v gulielmus_fw-la pictavius_n the_o emperor_n three_o ambassador_n who_o not_o to_o fall_v upon_o the_o same_o difficulty_n which_o his_o colleague_n do_v take_v their_o mandate_n and_o persuade_v they_o to_o expect_v a_o few_o day_n until_o he_o have_v send_v to_o caesar_n and_o receive_v a_o answer_n because_o in_o so_o do_v they_o shall_v proceed_v upon_o a_o good_a ground_n this_o make_v quiet_a those_o of_o wittenberg_n also_o the_o ambassador_n write_v to_o caesar_n tell_v he_o of_o the_o ambassador_n resolution_n show_v what_o a_o indignity_n it_o be_v to_o his_o majesty_n that_o no_o account_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o so_o honest_a and_o so_o just_a a_o promise_n make_v by_o he_o the_o emperor_n to_o provide_v against_o this_o disgrace_n and_o couning_o to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o council_n expect_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n write_v that_o the_o other_o shall_v be_v entertain_v until_o their_o arrival_n assure_v they_o they_o shall_v then_o be_v hear_v and_o with_o all_o charity_n confer_v with_o the_o thirteen_o of_o december_n maximilian_n the_o son_n of_o ferdinand_n pass_v trent_n maximilian_n pa_v by_o trent_n by_o trent_n with_o his_o wife_n and_o child_n and_o be_v meet_v by_o the_o legate_n and_o the_o italian_a and_o spanish_a prelate_n and_o some_o german_n also_o the_o prince_n elector_n do_v not_o meet_v he_o but_o visit_v he_o in_o his_o lodging_n the_o protestant_a ambassador_n complain_v to_o he_o that_o notwithstanding_o so_o many_o promise_n make_v by_o caesar_n they_o can_v not_o have_v audience_n and_o pray_v he_o to_o have_v pity_n on_o germany_n because_o those_o priest_n be_v stranger_n do_v not_o care_n for_o some_o small_a respect_n of_o their_o own_o to_o see_v it_o on_o fire_n yea_o by_o precipitate_v the_o determination_n and_o anathematism_n do_v make_v the_o controversy_n every_o day_n more_o hard_a maximilian_n persuade_v they_o to_o be_v patient_a and_o promise_v to_o treat_v with_o his_o uncle_n that_o the_o action_n of_o the_o council_n may_v pass_v as_o he_o have_v promise_v in_o the_o diet_n behalf_n and_o promise_v the_o protestant_a ambassador_n to_o treat_v with_o the_o emperor_n his_o uncle_n in_o their_o behalf_n they_o shall_v at_o christmas_n the_o pope_n create_v fourteen_o italian_a cardinal_n and_o immediate_o publish_v thirteen_o of_o they_o reserve_v one_o to_o be_v publish_v when_o he_o think_v fit_a and_o to_o honour_v so_o great_a a_o creation_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o papacy_n especial_o there_o be_v eight_o and_o forty_o cardinal_n in_o the_o college_n it_o the_o pope_n creat_v 14._o cardinal_n &_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o it_o which_o be_v then_o think_v a_o great_a number_n he_o pretend_v occasion_n to_o do_v it_o for_o the_o enmity_n with_o the_o french_a king_n of_o who_o he_o complain_v as_o well_o for_o the_o war_n he_o make_v against_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n as_o for_o the_o edict_n publish_v add_v a_o report_n which_o then_o come_v from_o lion_n
religion_n many_o be_v burn_v in_o england_n for_o religion_n they_o have_v be_v live_v and_o their_o body_n dig_v up_o and_o burn_v a_o action_n commend_v by_o some_o as_o a_o revenge_n of_o what_o henry_n the_o eight_o have_v do_v against_o s._n thomas_n by_o other_o compare_v to_o that_o which_o the_o pope_n stephanus_n the_o six_o and_o sergius_n the_o three_o do_v against_o the_o corpse_n of_o pope_n formosus_fw-la many_o also_o be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n burn_v in_o france_n for_o religion_n not_o also_o and_o in_o france_n also_o without_o the_o indignation_n of_o honest_a man_n who_o know_v that_o the_o diligence_n use_v against_o those_o poor_a people_n be_v not_o for_o piety_n or_o religion_n but_o to_o satiate_v valentina_n which_o be_v do_v to_o satiate_v the_o covetousness_n of_o diana_n valentina_n the_o covetousness_n of_o diana_n valentina_n the_o king_n mistress_n to_o who_o he_o have_v give_v all_o the_o confiscation_n of_o good_n make_v in_o the_o kingdom_n for_o cause_n of_o heresy_n it_o be_v wonder_v also_o that_o those_o of_o the_o new_a reformation_n shall_v meddle_v with_o blood_n for_o cause_n of_o religion_n for_o michael_n seruetus_fw-la of_o tarragona_n make_v a_o divine_a of_o a_o physician_n renew_v the_o old_a opinion_n of_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la and_o marcellus_n anciranus_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n subsist_v and_o therefore_o that_o christ_n be_v a_o pure_a man_n be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o geneva_n michael_n seruetus_fw-la be_v burn_v in_o geneva_n it_o in_o geneva_n by_o counsel_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o zuric_n berne_n and_o schiaffusa_fw-la and_o john_n caluin_n who_o be_v blame_v for_o it_o by_o many_o write_v a_o book_n defend_v that_o the_o magistrate_n may_v punish_v heretic_n with_o loss_n of_o life_n which_o doctrine_n be_v draw_v to_o diverse_a sense_n as_o it_o be_v understand_v more_o strict_o or_o more_o large_o or_o as_o the_o name_n of_o heretic_n be_v take_v diverse_o may_v sometime_o do_v hurt_v to_o he_o who_o another_o time_n it_o have_v help_v at_o that_o time_n ferdinand_n king_n of_o the_o roman_n publish_v a_o edict_n to_o all_o religion_n the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n publish_v a_o edict_n against_o all_o innovation_n in_o religion_n the_o people_n subject_a unto_o he_o that_o in_o point_n of_o religion_n and_o rite_n they_o shall_v not_o innovate_v but_o follow_v the_o ancient_a custom_n and_o particular_o that_o in_o the_o holy_a communion_n they_o shall_v be_v content_a to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o bread_n only_o wherein_o though_o many_o person_n of_o note_n the_o nobility_n and_o many_o of_o the_o city_n make_v supplication_n unto_o he_o that_o at_o the_o least_o the_o cup_n may_v be_v grant_v they_o say_v that_o the_o institution_n be_v of_o christ_n which_o may_v not_o be_v alter_v by_o man_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o use_n of_o the_o old_a church_n as_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n promise_v all_o submission_n and_o obedience_n in_o all_o other_o thing_n pray_v he_o not_o to_o burden_n their_o conscience_n but_o to_o accommodate_v his_o commandment_n to_o the_o order_n set_v down_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n yet_o ferdinand_n persevere_v in_o his_o resolution_n and_o answer_v they_o that_o his_o commandment_n be_v not_o new_a but_o a_o ancient_a institution_n use_v by_o his_o ancestor_n emperor_n king_n and_o duke_n of_o austria_n and_o that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n be_v a_o novitie_n bring_v in_o by_o curiosity_n or_o pride_n against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o prince_n yet_o he_o moderate_v the_o rigour_n of_o the_o answer_n say_v that_o the_o question_n be_v of_o a_o point_n that_o concern_v salvation_n he_o will_v think_v of_o it_o more_o diligent_o and_o answer_v they_o in_o fit_a time_n but_o that_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n he_o expect_v from_o they_o obedience_n and_o observation_n of_o the_o edict_n he_o publish_v also_o a_o catechism_n the_o fourteen_o of_o catechism_n and_o a_o catechism_n august_n make_v by_o his_o authority_n by_o some_o learned_a and_o pious_a divine_n rome_n 1555_o paul_n 4._o charles_n 5._o mary_n 〈◊〉_d henry_n 2._o which_o give_v distaste_n to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n command_v all_o the_o magistrate_n of_o those_o country_n not_o to_o suffer_v any_o schoolmaster_n to_o read_v any_o but_o that_o either_o in_o public_a or_o in_o private_a because_o by_o diverse_a pamphlet_n which_o go_v about_o religion_n be_v much_o corrupt_v in_o those_o country_n this_o constitution_n distaste_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n because_o it_o be_v not_o send_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v approve_v by_o his_o authority_n nor_o come_v forth_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o country_n the_o secular_a prince_n assume_v the_o office_n to_o cause_n to_o be_v compose_v and_o to_o authorize_v book_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n especial_o by_o name_n of_o catechism_n to_o show_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o secular_a power_n to_o determine_v what_o religion_n the_o people_n shall_v follow_v and_o what_o refuse_v the_o two_o year_n of_o the_o suspension_n of_o the_o council_n be_v expire_v they_o treat_v in_o the_o consistory_n what_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v do_v for_o although_o the_o condition_n in_o the_o decree_n be_v that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v of_o force_n again_o when_o the_o impediment_n be_v remoove_v which_o do_v still_o continue_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o war_n of_o sienna_n piedmont_n and_o other_o between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o french_a king_n yet_o it_o seem_v that_o any_o man_n of_o a_o unquiet_a spirit_n may_v say_v that_o those_o impediment_n be_v not_o sufficient_a and_o that_o it_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o council_n be_v on_o foot_n again_o so_o that_o to_o free_v themselves_o from_o those_o danger_n it_o may_v be_v good_a to_o make_v a_o new_a declaration_n but_o wise_a man_n end_v it_o be_v resolve_v in_o rome_n not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o council_n though_o the_o two_o year_n of_o suspension_n be_v end_v give_v counsel_n not_o to_o move_v the_o evil_a while_o it_o be_v quiet_a while_o the_o world_n be_v silent_a while_o neither_o prince_n nor_o people_n demand_v the_o council_n lest_o by_o show_v they_o be_v afraid_a they_o may_v excite_v other_o to_o require_v it_o this_o advice_n prevayl_v and_o make_v the_o pope_n resolve_v never_o to_o speak_v more_o of_o it_o in_o the_o year_n 1555._o there_o be_v a_o diet_n in_o ausburg_n which_o the_o emperor_n religion_n 1555._o a_o diet._n 〈◊〉_d have_v in_o ausburg_n to_o compose_v the_o difference_n in_o religion_n have_v intimate_v principal_o to_o compose_v the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n in_o regard_n this_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o the_o trouble_n and_o calamity_n of_o germany_n with_o the_o loss_n not_o only_o of_o the_o life_n of_o many_o thousand_o of_o man_n but_o of_o their_o soul_n also_o ferdinand_n begin_v the_o diet_n in_o the_o emperor_n name_n the_o five_o of_o february_n where_o he_o show_v at_o large_a the_o lamentable_a spectacle_n of_o germany_n in_o which_o man_n of_o the_o same_o baptism_n language_n oration_n in_o which_o ferdinand_n make_v a_o oration_n and_o empire_n be_v distract_v by_o so_o various_a a_o profession_n of_o faith_n there_o arise_v new_a sect_n every_o day_n which_o do_v show_v not_o only_o small_a reverence_n towards_o god_n and_o great_a perturbation_n of_o man_n mind_n but_o be_v cause_n also_o that_o the_o multitude_n know_v not_o what_o to_o believe_v and_o that_o many_o of_o the_o principal_a nobility_n and_o other_o be_v without_o all_o faith_n and_o honesty_n make_v no_o conscience_n of_o their_o action_n which_o take_v away_o all_o commerce_n so_o that_o now_o it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v that_o the_o german_n be_v better_a than_o the_o turk_n and_o other_o barbarous_a people_n for_o which_o cause_v god_n have_v afflict_v it_o with_o so_o great_a calamity_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o take_v in_o hand_n the_o business_n of_o religion_n he_o say_v a_o general_a free_a and_o pious_a council_n be_v former_o think_v the_o only_a remedy_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o faith_n be_v common_a to_o all_o christian_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v handle_v by_o all_o and_o the_o emperor_n employ_v all_o his_o force_n herein_o do_v cause_v it_o to_o be_v assemble_v more_o than_o once_o but_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o say_v why_o no_o fruit_n come_v by_o it_o it_o be_v well_o know_v to_o all_o that_o be_v present_a now_o if_o they_o desire_v to_o prove_v the_o same_o remedy_n again_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o remove_v the_o impediment_n which_o do_v 2._o 1555_o marcdilus_n 〈◊〉_d charles_n 5._o mary_n henry_n 2._o hinder_v they_o from_o attain_v the_o wish_a end_n but_o if_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o accident_n
be_v lawful_o hinder_v to_o be_v there_o before_o that_o day_n admonish_v those_o also_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n who_o have_v or_o may_v have_v any_o interest_n there_o pray_v the_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n to_o send_v their_o proctor_n if_o they_o can_v be_v personal_o present_a and_o to_o cause_v their_o prelate_n to_o perform_v their_o duty_n without_o excuse_n or_o delay_n and_o to_o make_v the_o passage_n free_a and_o secure_a for_o they_o and_o their_o company_n as_o himself_o will_v do_v within_o his_o territory_n have_v no_o other_o end_n in_o celebrate_v the_o council_n but_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n the_o reduce_n of_o the_o disperse_a sheep_n and_o the_o perpetual_a peace_n of_o christendom_n ordain_v that_o the_o bull_n shall_v be_v publish_v in_o rome_n and_o that_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o after_o the_o end_n of_o two_o month_n it_o shall_v bind_v all_o that_o be_v comprehend_v as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v personal_o intimate_v unto_o they_o the_o pope_n think_v he_o have_v satisfy_v himself_o those_o who_o will_v have_v a_o party_n do_v not_o please_v either_o party_n new_a council_n intimate_v and_o those_o who_o desire_v a_o continuation_n of_o the_o old_a but_o as_o middle_a counsel_n do_v usual_o displease_v both_o party_n so_o the_o pope_n give_v satisfaction_n to_o none_o as_o shall_v be_v declare_v present_o after_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o bull_n the_o pope_n send_v nicheto_o into_o france_n with_o it_o with_o commission_n if_o the_o form_n do_v not_o please_v to_o say_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o except_v against_o the_o word_n continuare_fw-la because_o it_o do_v not_o hinder_v they_o to_o speak_v again_o of_o the_o thing_n already_o propose_v he_o send_v it_o also_o to_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n of_o spain_n he_o send_v likewise_o zacharias_n delphinus_n bishop_n of_o liesina_n to_o the_o prince_n of_o high_a germany_n and_o joannes_n franciscus_n comendone_v bishop_n of_o zante_n to_o those_o of_o lowe_n germany_n with_o letter_n to_o they_o all_o and_o with_o order_n first_o to_o receive_v instruction_n from_o the_o emperor_n how_o to_o treat_v with_o they_o and_o then_o to_o execute_v their_o ambassage_n he_o send_v also_o the_o abbot_n martinengo_n to_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n to_o invite_v she_o and_o her_o bishop_n to_o the_o council_n be_v persuade_v so_o to_o do_v by_o the_o forename_a edward_n cerne_n who_o promise_v he_o that_o his_o nuncio_n shall_v be_v receive_v council_n the_o queen_n of_o england_n be_v invite_v to_o the_o council_n by_o one_o half_a of_o the_o kingdom_n by_o the_o queen_n consent_n and_o although_o the_o pope_n be_v put_v in_o mind_n to_o send_v nuncij_fw-la into_o england_n and_o to_o prince_n elsewhere_o who_o do_v profess_v open_a separation_n from_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n will_v be_v a_o disreputation_n to_o he_o yet_o he_o answer_v he_o will_v humble_v himself_o to_o heresy_n in_o regard_n whatsoever_o be_v do_v to_o gain_v soul_n to_o christ_n do_v beseem_v that_o sea_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n also_o he_o send_v canobius_fw-la into_o polonia_n with_o design_n to_o make_v he_o to_o go_v into_o moscovia_n to_o invite_v that_o prince_n and_o nation_n to_o the_o council_n though_o they_o have_v never_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n afterward_o he_o return_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o council_n in_o consistory_n desire_v to_o be_v inform_v of_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o good_a life_n and_o opinion_n of_o diverse_a province_n fit_a to_o dispute_v and_o persuade_v the_o truth_n say_v he_o purpose_v to_o call_v many_o of_o they_o promise_v that_o after_o he_o have_v use_v all_o possible_a diligence_n to_o make_v all_o christian_n come_v thither_o and_o to_o unite_v they_o in_o religion_n though_o some_o or_o many_o refuse_v to_o come_v he_o will_v not_o forbear_v to_o proceed_v yet_o he_o be_v trouble_v because_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n unto_o who_o a_o great_a part_n of_o france_n be_v unite_v will_v deny_v to_o come_v or_o will_v demand_v exorbitant_a thing_n which_o he_o can_v not_o grant_v they_o and_o doubt_v they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o disturb_v the_o council_n with_o arm_n neither_o do_v he_o hope_v to_o be_v assist_v by_o the_o emperor_n against_o they_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o small_a force_n he_o confess_v that_o the_o danger_n be_v great_a and_o the_o remedy_n small_a and_o be_v perplex_v and_o trouble_v in_o mind_n the_o bull_n of_o the_o council_n go_v through_o germany_n fall_v into_o protestant_n hand_n assemble_v at_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o salzemburg_n who_o do_v intimate_v a_o diet_n in_o namburg_n to_o begin_v the_o twenty_o of_o january_n vergerius_n write_v a_o book_n against_o this_o bull_n in_o which_o after_o a_o great_a invective_n bull._n vergerius_n write_v a_o book_n against_o the_o bull._n against_o the_o pomp_n luxury_n and_o ambition_n of_o the_o court_n he_o say_v that_o the_o council_n be_v call_v by_o the_o pope_n not_o to_o establish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o servitude_n and_o oppression_n of_o poor_a soul_n that_o none_o be_v call_v but_o those_o who_o be_v bind_v by_o oath_n to_o the_o pope_n so_o that_o not_o only_o all_o be_v exclude_v who_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o also_o man_n of_o the_o great_a understanding_n among_o themselves_o take_v away_o all_o liberty_n in_o which_o only_o there_o be_v hope_n of_o agreement_n at_o this_o time_n news_n come_v to_o rome_n that_o the_o french_a king_n have_v imprison_v navarre_n the_o prince_n of_o conde_n be_v imprison_v and_o a_o guard_n be_v set_v upon_o y_o e_o king_n of_o navarre_n the_o prince_n of_o conde_n and_o set_v a_o guard_n upon_o the_o king_n of_o navare_fw-la which_o please_v the_o pope_n much_o as_o a_o thing_n which_o may_v whole_o disturb_v the_o nationall_n council_n and_o his_o hope_n be_v the_o strong_a that_o he_o shall_v receive_v no_o distaste_n because_o advice_n come_v that_o the_o king_n be_v very_o sick_a &_o in_o danger_n to_o die_v which_o hinder_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o state_n in_o meaux_n and_o in_o the_o end_n there_o be_v great_a alteration_n for_o francis_n the_o french_a king_n die_v the_o five_o of_o december_n and_o charles_n the_o nine_o of_o the_o age_n of_o ten_o year_n succeed_a in_o regard_n of_o his_o minority_n succee_v the_o french_a king_n die_v &_o charles_n the_o 9_o succee_v the_o government_n fall_v principal_o upon_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n as_o first_o prince_n of_o the_o blood_n the_o queen_n in_o other_o adhered_a to_o he_o to_o maintain_v call_v continue_v confident_a 1560_o pius_fw-la 4._o ferdinand_z elizabeth_n charles_n 9_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n &_o q._n mother_n govern_v france_n 〈…〉_o which_o make_v the_o protestant_n more_o confident_a the_o authority_n which_o she_o have_v take_v in_o the_o life_n time_n of_o her_o other_o 〈◊〉_d and_o navarre_n be_v content_a to_o participate_v with_o 〈…〉_o the_o better_a to_o maintain_v his_o own_o he_o do_v almost_o open_o favour_v the_o new_a religion_n and_o be_v whole_o govern_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o jasper_n coligni_n the_o admiral_n who_o do_v make_v profession_n of_o it_o so_o that_o the_o protestant_n be_v more_o confident_a to_o obtain_v liberty_n of_o religion_n as_o they_o desire_v they_o assemble_v almost_o public_o with_o much_o discontent_n and_o indignation_n of_o the_o people_n and_o danger_n of_o section_n hereupon_o the_o king_n mother_n and_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o counsel_n resolve_v to_o hold_v the_o state_n in_o orleans_n and_o begin_v to_o do_v it_o the_o 13._o of_o december_n among_o other_o thing_n there_o propose_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o kingdom_n speak_v the_o state_n be_v hold_v in_o orlien_n where_o the_o chancellor_n begin_v to_o speak_v the_o chancellor_n say_v that_o religion_n be_v the_o most_o potent_a weapon_n overcom_v all_o affection_n and_o charity_n and_o be_v the_o forest_n bond_n of_o humane_a society_n that_o kingdom_n be_v more_o bound_v and_o more_o divide_v by_o religion_n then_o by_o the_o confine_n themselves_o that_o he_o that_o be_v move_v with_o religion_n contemn_v wife_n child_n and_o kindred_n if_o there_o be_v difference_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o same_o family_n the_o father_n agree_v not_o with_o his_o son_n nor_o the_o brother_n among_o themselves_o nor_o the_o husband_n with_o the_o wife_n to_o remedy_v these_o disorder_n there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o council_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v promise_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v tolerate_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v shape_v out_o his_o own_o religion_n and_o bring_v in_o new_a rite_n at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o so_o trouble_v the_o public_a penny_n if_o the_o council_n fail_v by_o the_o pope_n default_n the_o king_n will_v make_v provision_n another_o way_n but_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o every_o
determination_n to_o the_o cardinal_n exhort_v they_o to_o consider_v that_o it_o do_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n nor_o of_o that_o college_n to_o receive_v rule_n and_o reformation_n from_o other_o and_o that_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o time_n when_o all_o cry_n out_o for_o reformation_n not_o understand_v what_o court._n the_o pope_n promise_v to_o make_v a_o reformation_n in_o the_o court._n it_o be_v do_v require_v that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o glorious_a name_n thereof_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v refuse_v that_o in_o this_o contrariety_n of_o reason_n the_o best_a temper_n be_v to_o make_v by_o way_n of_o prevention_n a_o reformation_n of_o his_o own_o accord_n which_o will_v not_o serve_v to_o that_o purpose_n only_o but_o win_v commendation_n also_o by_o make_v himself_o a_o example_n to_o other_o that_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o will_v reform_v the_o penitentiary_n and_o datary_a principal_a member_n of_o the_o court_n and_o afterward_o consider_v of_o small_a matter_n and_o he_o depute_a cardinal_n for_o one_o and_o the_o other_o charge_n he_o discourse_v of_o the_o cause_n why_o the_o open_n of_o the_o council_n can_v council_n and_o hasten_v the_o open_n of_o the_o council_n no_o long_o be_v defer_v for_o it_o be_v discover_v that_o the_o vltramontans_n have_v bad_a end_n and_o design_n to_o abate_v the_o absolute_a power_n which_o god_n have_v give_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n the_o more_o time_n they_o have_v to_o think_v on_o it_o the_o more_o their_o plot_n will_v increase_v and_o that_o there_o be_v danger_n that_o by_o time_n some_o of_o the_o italian_n may_v be_v gain_v also_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o safe_a way_n to_o use_v expedition_n and_o that_o if_o the_o great_a expense_n which_o be_v make_v in_o maintain_v the_o prelate_n be_v not_o quick_o end_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v they_o afterward_o he_o give_v the_o cross_n of_o the_o legation_n to_o the_o card._n altemps_n with_o order_n to_o put_v himself_o in_o readiness_n and_o to_o be_v in_o trent_n at_o the_o open_n of_o the_o council_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o cause_n why_o he_o revoke_v the_o order_n give_v at_o the_o departure_n of_o cardinal_n simoneta_n to_o open_v the_o council_n at_o his_o arrival_n be_v the_o instance_n of_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n in_o rome_n that_o the_o ambassador_n of_o his_o master_n may_v be_v present_a at_o it_o but_o afterward_o have_v advertise_v his_o holiness_n that_o they_o will_v be_v in_o trent_n before_o the_o midst_n of_o january_n he_o earnest_o entreat_v the_o marquis_n of_o pescara_n who_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n have_v send_v ambassador_n to_o the_o council_n to_o be_v in_o trent_n and_o assist_v at_o the_o open_n of_o it_o he_o solicit_v the_o venetian_n also_o to_o send_v their_o ambassage_n be_v careful_a that_o that_o ceremony_n shall_v pass_v with_o reputation_n notwithstanding_o he_o write_v to_o the_o legate_n to_o open_v the_o council_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o of_o the_o forename_a prince_n be_v arrive_v and_o that_o if_o they_o come_v not_o by_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o month_n they_o shall_v defer_v it_o no_o long_o and_o in_o this_o coniuncture_n the_o year_n 1561_o do_v end_n the_o sixth_o book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o legate_n 9_o 1562_o pius_fw-la 4._o fardinand_n elizabeth_n charles_n 9_o in_o conformity_n of_o that_o which_o the_o arise_v a_o general_a congregation_n be_v hell_n the_o 15._o of_o april_n in_o which_o two_o great_a controversy_n do_v arise_v pope_n have_v last_o command_v the_o fifteen_o of_o january_n make_v a_o general_a congregation_n in_o which_o the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n as_o prime_a legate_n make_v a_o discourse_n to_o show_v how_o necessary_a and_o fit_a it_o be_v to_o open_v the_o council_n and_o exhort_v the_o prelate_n to_o promote_v so_o sacred_a and_o pious_a a_o work_n with_o fasting_n alm_n and_o frequent_a mass_n afterward_o the_o bull_n of_o the_o legation_n be_v read_v date_v the_o ten_o of_o march_n which_o be_v in_o general_a term_n with_o the_o usual_a clause_n that_o he_o send_v they_o as_o angel_n of_o peace_n to_o preside_v in_o the_o council_n which_o be_v to_o begin_v at_o easten_v after_o this_o three_z other_o brief_n be_v read_v the_o first_o date_v the_o five_o of_o march_n and_o be_v a_o faculty_n to_o the_o legate_n to_o give_v leave_n to_o the_o prelate_n and_o divine_n to_o read_v during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n book_n prohibit_v the_o second_o date_v the_o three_o and_o twenty_o of_o may_n that_o the_o legate_n shall_v have_v faculty_n to_o absolve_v those_o who_o will_v secret_o abjure_v for_o cause_n of_o heresy_n the_o three_o be_v date_v the_o last_o of_o december_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n to_o take_v away_o all_o controversy_n which_o may_v happen_v between_o the_o prelate_n about_o precedency_n do_v command_v that_o the_o patriarch_n shall_v have_v the_o first_o place_n the_o archbishop_z the_o second_o and_o the_o bishop_n the_o three_o regard_v only_o the_o time_n of_o the_o promotion_n not_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o sea_n or_o of_o the_o primacy_n whether_o true_a or_o pretend_a this_o be_v read_v friar_n bartholomew_n de_fw-fr mar●iri_n archbishop_n of_o braga_n in_o prelate_n one_o about_o precedence_n of_o the_o prelate_n portugal_n exclaim_v that_o the_o council_n shall_v begin_v with_o do_v injury_n to_o the_o principal_a church_n of_o christendom_n say_v that_o his_o sea_n which_o have_v the_o primacy_n of_o spain_n shall_v by_o this_o sentence_n be_v make_v inferior_a not_o only_o to_o three_o archbishopric_n subject_a unto_o he_o but_o also_o to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o rosano_n who_o have_v no_o suffragan_n and_o to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o nissia_n and_o antivari_fw-la who_o have_v not_o any_o residency_n and_o scarce_o any_o christian_n to_o govern_v that_o it_o be_v not_o equitable_a to_o make_v one_o law_n for_o one_o self_n and_o another_o for_o other_o and_o to_o pretend_v the_o preservation_n of_o one_o own_o right_a and_o to_o deprive_v other_o of_o they_o he_o speak_v so_o earnest_o that_o the_o legate_n be_v trouble_v and_o do_v hardly_o pacify_v he_o though_o they_o cause_v a_o declaration_n to_o be_v write_v that_o the_o pope_n meaning_n and_o they_o be_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v gain_v or_o lose_v any_o right_n by_o that_o decree_n neither_o in_o 〈…〉_o possission_n but_o that_o every_o primate_n whether_o true_a or_o pretend_a shall_v after_o the_o council_n remain_v in_o the_o same_o state_n in_o which_o he_o be_v before_o the_o archbishop_n be_v with_o much_o ado_n appease_v the_o other_o spaniard_n make_v request_n that_o the_o open_n of_o the_o council_n council_n another_o whether_o this_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v a_o continuation_n of_o the_o old_a or_o a_o new_a council_n may_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v a_o continuation_n of_o that_o which_o be_v begin_v under_o paul_n and_o prosecute_v by_o julius_n le_fw-fr 〈…〉_o any_o one_o may_v cavil_n that_o it_o be_v a_o new_a council_n the_o bishop_n of_o zante_n who_o have_v be_v in_o germany_n and_o know_v how_o that_o action_n will_v be_v calumniate_v and_o how_o distasteful_a to_o the_o emperor_n reply_v that_o as_o the_o thing_n already_o determine_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v question_v but_o hold_v as_o decide_v so_o to_o declare_v so_o much_o now_o without_o necessity_n will_v cut_v off_o all_o hope_n from_o the_o emperor_n and_o french_a king_n to_o find_v such_o a_o coniuncture_n as_o that_o the_o protestant_n will_v submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o council_n and_o assist_v in_o it_o the_o legate_n especial_o mantua_n and_o varmiense_n do_v second_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o bishop_n with_o many_o discourse_n and_o much_o be_v speak_v on_o both_o side_n very_o bitter_o and_o the_o spaniard_n say_v they_o will_v protest_v and_o return_v yet_o after_o many_o consultation_n they_o final_o agree_v to_o desist_v from_o their_o instance_n not_o to_o oppose_v the_o emperor_n the_o french_a king_n the_o dutchman_n and_o frenchman_n nor_o to_o give_v matter_n of_o complaint_n to_o the_o protestant_n so_o that_o no_o word_n be_v use_v to_o signify_v it_o be_v a_o new_a council_n or_o to_o prejudice_n the_o continuation_n the_o cardinal_n promise_v in_o the_o pope_n name_n that_o his_o holiness_n will_v confirm_v whatsoever_o be_v do_v in_o trent_n in_o the_o two_o precedent_a counsel_n though_o this_o be_v dissolve_v without_o conclusion_n the_o spaniard_n be_v content_a and_o after_o long_o discourse_v it_o be_v conclude_v that_o a_o form_n of_o word_n shall_v be_v use_v council_n a_o decree_n for_o open_v the_o council_n to_o signify_v that_o the_o council_n do_v begin_v to_o be_v celebrate_v all_o suspension_n be_v remove_v which_o
german_n the_o chancellor_n declare_v in_o the_o king_n name_n that_o they_o be_v call_v to_o consult_v how_o to_o remedy_v the_o stir_n raise_v in_o the_o kingdom_n he_o make_v a_o recapitulation_n of_o all_o the_o thing_n that_o happen_v add_v that_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n shall_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o prelate_n but_o when_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o keep_v of_o the_o subject_n in_o obedience_n to_o the_o king_n be_v in_o question_n that_o this_o can_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o ecclesiastique_n but_o to_o those_o who_o the_o king_n will_v appoint_v to_o consult_v of_o it_o that_o he_o have_v ever_o commend_v tulli_n who_o be_v wont_a to_o blame_v cato_n that_o live_v in_o a_o most_o corrupt_a age_n be_v so_o severe_a and_o rigid_a in_o his_o determination_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o senator_n in_o plato_n his_o commonwealth_n that_o law_n be_v to_o be_v fit_v to_o the_o time_n and_o person_n as_o the_o shoe_n to_o the_o foot_n that_o this_o particular_a be_v then_o to_o be_v consult_v of_o whether_o it_o be_v good_a service_n for_o the_o king_n to_o permit_v or_o prohibit_v the_o congregation_n of_o the_o protestant_n wherein_o they_o be_v not_o to_o dispute_v which_o religion_n be_v the_o better_a because_o they_o take_v not_o in_o hand_n to_o frame_v a_o religion_n but_o to_o put_v in_o order_n a_o republic_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o absurd_a to_o say_v that_o many_o may_v be_v good_a citizen_n and_o not_o good_a christian_n and_o that_o those_o who_o be_v of_o diverse_a religion_n may_v live_v in_o peace_n in_o consult_v hereof_o the_o opinion_n be_v diverse_a but_o they_o prevail_v who_o think_v that_o the_o edict_n of_o july_n be_v to_o be_v remit_v in_o part_n and_o the_o protestant_n to_o have_v leave_n to_o preach_v at_o the_o make_n of_o the_o edict_n which_o contain_v many_o point_n the_o cardinal_n of_o borbon_n tornon_n chastillon_n be_v present_a as_o also_o the_o bishop_n of_o orleans_n and_o valence_n that_o the_o protestant_n shall_v restore_v the_o church_n possession_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a good_n usurp_v that_o they_o shall_v forbear_v to_o beat_v down_o cross_n image_n and_o church_n upon_o pain_n of_o death_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o assemble_v themselves_o to_o preach_v pray_v or_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n in_o public_a or_o in_o private_a by_o day_n or_o by_o night_n within_o the_o city_n that_o the_o prohibition_n and_o punishment_n of_o the_o edict_n of_o july_n and_o all_o other_o make_v before_o shall_v be_v suspend_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v molest_v in_o their_o sermon_n make_v out_o of_o the_o city_n or_o hinder_v by_o the_o magistrate_n who_o ought_v to_o protect_v they_o from_o injury_n chastise_v the_o sedition_n on_o both_o side_n that_o none_o shall_v scandalize_v another_o for_o religion_n or_o use_v contumelious_a word_n of_o faction_n that_o the_o magistrate_n and_o officer_n may_v be_v present_a at_o the_o sermon_n and_o congregation_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o make_v synod_n colloquy_n or_o consistory_n but_o with_o leave_n and_o in_o presence_n of_o the_o magistrate_n that_o they_o shall_v observe_v the_o law_n for_o feast_n and_o degree_n prohibit_v for_o marriage_n that_o the_o minister_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o swear_v to_o the_o public_a officer_n not_o to_o offend_v against_o this_o edict_n nor_o to_o preach_v any_o doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o nicen_n council_n and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a and_o old_a testament_n the_o parliament_n can_v hardly_o be_v bring_v to_o accept_v of_o this_o edict_n therefore_o the_o king_n do_v command_v again_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v publish_v add_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v make_v by_o way_n of_o provision_n until_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o general_n council_n be_v diwlge_v or_o the_o king_n ordain_v otherwise_o not_o mean_v to_o allow_v two_o religion_n in_o his_o kingdom_n but_o that_o only_a of_o the_o holy_a mother_n the_o church_n in_o which_o himself_o and_o his_o predecessor_n have_v live_v the_o parliament_n be_v not_o agree_v for_o all_o this_o the_o king_n command_v that_o lay_v aside_o all_o delay_n and_o difficulty_n the_o ordination_n shall_v be_v publish_v and_o so_o it_o be_v the_o six_o of_o march_n with_o this_o clause_n that_o the_o parliament_n do_v verify_v 6._o for_o appease_v of_o which_o a_o edict_n be_v make_v march_v 6._o the_o king_n letter_n to_o obey_v he_o consider_v the_o state_n of_o the_o time_n not_o to_o approve_v the_o new_a religion_n but_o only_o by_o way_n of_o provision_n until_o it_o be_v otherwise_o ordain_v by_o the_o king_n but_o to_o return_v to_o trent_n in_o the_o congregation_n hold_v the_o seven_o and_o twenty_o january_n three_o proposition_n in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o 27._o of_o january_n of_o january_n the_o legate_n make_v three_o proposition_n the_o first_o to_o examine_v the_o book_n write_v by_o diverse_a author_n since_o the_o heresy_n begin_v together_o with_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o catholic_n against_o they_o to_o determine_v what_o the_o synod_n shall_v decree_v concern_v they_o the_o second_o that_o all_o that_o be_v interest_v in_o that_o matter_n shall_v be_v cite_v by_o decree_n of_o the_o synod_n lest_o they_o complain_v that_o they_o have_v not_o be_v hear_v the_o three_o that_o a_o safe_a conduct_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o those_o who_o be_v fall_v into_o heresy_n with_o a_o large_a promise_n of_o great_a and_o singular_a clemency_n so_o that_o they_o will_v repent_v and_o acknowledge_v the_o power_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o order_n be_v give_v that_o the_o father_n have_v consider_v on_o the_o proposition_n shall_v deliver_v their_o opinion_n in_o the_o next_o congregation_n as_o well_o how_o to_o examine_v with_o case_n the_o book_n and_o censure_n as_o concern_v all_o the_o rest_n and_o prelate_n be_v depute_v to_o examine_v the_o mandate_n and_o excuse_n of_o those_o who_o pretend_v they_o can_v not_o come_v to_o the_o council_n this_o place_n do_v require_v a_o relation_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o prohibit_v book_n and_o with_o what_o progress_n it_o be_v come_v to_o that_o state_n in_o which_o it_o then_o be_v and_o what_o new_a order_n be_v then_o take_v in_o the_o church_n of_o martyr_n there_o be_v no_o ecclesiastical_a prohibition_n though_o some_o godly_a man_n make_v conscience_n of_o book_n a_o discourse_n of_o the_o author_n concern_v the_o prohibition_n of_o book_n read_v bad_a book_n for_o fear_n of_o offend_v against_o one_o of_o the_o three_o point_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o avoid_v the_o contagion_n of_o evil_a not_o to_o expose_v one_o self_n to_o temptation_n without_o necessity_n or_o profit_n and_o not_o to_o spend_v time_n vain_o these_o law_n be_v natural_a do_v remain_v always_o and_o shall_v oblige_v we_o to_o beware_v of_o read_v bad_a book_n though_o there_o be_v no_o ecclesiastical_a law_n for_o it_o but_o these_o respect_n cease_v the_o example_n of_o dionysius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n a_o famous_a doctor_n do_v happen_v who_o about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 240._o be_v reprehend_v by_o his_o priest_n for_o these_o cause_n and_o trouble_v with_o these_o respect_n have_v a_o vision_n that_o he_o shall_v read_v all_o book_n because_o he_o be_v able_a to_o judge_v of_o they_o yet_o they_o think_v there_o be_v great_a danger_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o gentile_n then_o of_o the_o heretic_n the_o read_n whereof_o be_v more_o abhor_v and_o reprehend_v because_o it_o be_v more_o use_v by_o christian_a doctor_n for_o a_o vanity_n of_o learning_n eloquence_n for_o this_o cause_n s._n hierom_n either_o in_o a_o vision_n or_o in_o a_o sleep_n be_v beat_v by_o the_o devil_n so_o that_o about_o the_o year_n 400._o a_o council_n in_o carthage_n do_v forbid_v to_o read_v the_o book_n of_o the_o gentile_n but_o allow_v they_o to_o read_v the_o book_n of_o the_o heretic_n the_o decree_n whereof_o be_v among_o the_o canon_n collect_v by_o gratian._n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o prohibition_n by_o way_n of_o canon_n but_o there_o be_v other_o by_o counsel_n of_o the_o father_n to_o be_v regulate_v according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n before_o recite_v the_o book_n of_o heretic_n contain_v doctrine_n condemn_v by_o counsel_n be_v often_o forbid_v by_o the_o emperor_n for_o good_a government_n so_o constantine_n forbid_v the_o book_n of_o arrius_n arcadius_n those_o of_o the_o eunomian_o and_o manichee_n theodosius_n those_o of_o nestorius_n martianus_n those_o of_o the_o eutichean_o and_o in_o spain_n the_o king_n ricaredus_n those_o of_o the_o arrian_n it_o suffice_v the_o counsel_n and_o bishop_n to_o show_v what_o book_n do_v contain_v damn_a or_o apocryphal_a doctrine_n so_o do_v gelasius_n in_o the_o year_n 494._o and_o go_v no_o further_o leave_v it_o
to_o the_o conscience_n of_o every_o one_o to_o avoid_v they_o or_o read_v they_o to_o a_o good_a end_n after_o the_o year_n 800._o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o they_o assume_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o politic_a government_n so_o they_o cause_v the_o book_n who_o author_n they_o do_v condemn_v to_o be_v burn_v and_o forbid_v the_o read_n of_o they_o notwithstanding_o one_o shall_v find_v but_o few_o book_n forbid_v in_o that_o sort_n until_o this_o age_n a_o general_a prohibition_n of_o read_v book_n contain_v doctrine_n of_o heretic_n or_o suspect_v of_o heresy_n upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n without_o any_o further_a sentence_n be_v not_o use_v martinus_n 5._o do_v in_o a_o bull_n excommunicate_v all_o the_o sect_n of_o heretic_n especial_o wiglesi_v and_o hussite_n not_o mention_v those_o who_o read_v their_o book_n though_o many_o of_o they_o go_v about_o leo_fw-la the_o ten_o condemn_v luther_n do_v withal_o forbid_v all_o his_o book_n upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n the_o pope_n follow_v in_o the_o bull_n call_v in_o oena_fw-la have_v condemn_v and_o excommunicate_v all_o heretic_n do_v excommunicate_v those_o also_o who_o read_v their_o book_n and_o in_o other_o bull_n against_o heretic_n in_o general_a do_v thunder_v the_o same_o censure_n against_o the_o reader_n of_o their_o book_n this_o do_v rather_o breed_v a_o confusion_n for_o the_o heretic_n not_o be_v condemn_v by_o name_n one_o be_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o book_n more_o by_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o doctrine_n then_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o author_n wherein_o diverse_a man_n be_v of_o diverse_a opinion_n many_o scruple_n of_o conscience_n do_v arise_v the_o inquisitor_n be_v more_o diligent_a make_v catalogue_n of_o those_o who_o they_o know_v which_o not_o be_v confer_v be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o remove_v the_o difficulty_n philip_n king_n of_o spain_n be_v the_o first_o that_o give_v a_o more_o convenient_a form_n in_o the_o year_n 1558_o make_v a_o law_n that_o the_o catalogue_n of_o book_n prohibit_v by_o inquisition_n shall_v be_v print_v according_a to_o this_o example_n paul_n 4._o also_o ordain_v that_o a_o index_n shall_v be_v compose_v by_o that_o office_n and_o print_v and_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1559._o in_o which_o they_o do_v proceed_v many_o step_n further_o than_o former_o they_o have_v do_v and_o lay_v foundation_n to_o maintain_v and_o make_v great_a the_o authority_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n by_o deprive_v man_n of_o that_o knowledge_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o defend_v they_o from_o usurpation_n until_o that_o time_n they_o contain_v themselves_o within_o the_o term_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o heretic_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o book_n forbid_v if_o the_o author_n be_v not_o condemn_v this_o index_n be_v divide_v into_o three_o part_n the_o first_o contain_v the_o name_n of_o those_o all_o who_o work_n of_o what_o argument_n soever_o though_o profane_a be_v forbid_v and_o in_o this_o number_n be_v place_v not_o only_o those_o who_o have_v profess_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o that_o of_o rome_n but_o many_o also_o which_o live_v and_o dye_v in_o the_o profession_n thereof_o the_o second_o contain_v the_o name_n of_o the_o book_n which_o be_v particular_o condemn_v other_o of_o the_o same_o author_n not_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o three_o some_o book_n be_v condemn_v without_o a_o name_n but_o only_o by_o a_o general_a rule_n that_o all_o those_o be_v forbid_v which_o bear_v not_o the_o name_n of_o the_o author_n write_v after_o the_o year_n 1519_o and_o many_o author_n and_o book_n be_v condemn_v which_o for_o 300._o 200._o and_o 100_o year_n have_v be_v common_o read_v by_o the_o learned_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o the_o knowledge_n and_o without_o the_o contradiction_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o those_o time_n and_o among_o the_o modern_n some_o of_o those_o which_o be_v print_v in_o italy_n even_o in_o rome_n with_o approbation_n of_o the_o inquisition_n and_o allow_v also_o by_o the_o brief_n of_o the_o pope_n himself_o be_v forbid_v as_o the_o annotation_n of_o erasmus_n upon_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o leo_n the_o ten_o have_v read_v approve_v by_o his_o brief_n date_v in_o rome_n september_n read_v the_o annotation_n of_o erasmus_n upon_o the_o new_a testament_n read_v &_o approve_v by_o leo_n 10._o be_v forbid_v to_o be_v read_v 10._o 1518._o but_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n considerable_a above_o all_o that_o under_o colour_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n book_n be_v prohibit_v and_o condemn_v with_o the_o same_o severity_n in_o which_o the_o authority_n of_o prince_n and_o temporal_a magistrate_n be_v defend_v from_o they_o surpation_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o of_o counsel_n and_o bishop_n from_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n in_o which_o hypocrisy_n or_o tyranny_n be_v manifest_v by_o which_o the_o people_n under_o pretence_n of_o religion_n be_v deceive_v in_o sum_n a_o better_a mystery_n be_v never_o find_v then_o to_o use_v religion_n to_o make_v man_n insensible_a that_o inquisition_n go_v so_o sarre_o that_o it_o make_v a_o catalogue_n of_o 62._o printer_n and_o prohibit_v all_o book_n print_v by_o they_o of_o what_o author_n art_n or_o idiom_n soever_o with_o a_o addition_n of_o more_o weight_n that_o be_v and_o book_n print_v by_o such_o printer_n who_o have_v print_v book_n of_o heretic_n so_o that_o there_o scarce_o remain_v a_o book_n to_o be_v read_v and_o for_o the_o height_n of_o rigour_n the_o prohibition_n of_o what_o book_n soever_o contain_v in_o that_o catalogue_n be_v upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n 〈◊〉_d sententiae_fw-la reserve_v to_o the_o pope_n deprivation_n and_o incapacitie_n of_o office_n and_o benefice_n perpetual_a infamy_n and_o other_o arbitrary_a punishment_n concern_v this_o severity_n remonstrance_n be_v make_v to_o this_o pope_n pius_n who_o refer_v the_o index_n and_o all_o the_o matter_n to_o the_o council_n as_o have_v be_v say_v touch_v the_o article_n propose_v there_o be_v diverse_a opinion_n ludovicus_fw-la becatelli_n archbishop_n of_o ragusi_n and_o friar_n augustin_n seluago_n archbishop_n of_o index_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o ragusi_n and_o of_o genua_n concern_v the_o index_n genua_n think_v that_o no_o good_a effect_n can_v proceed_v from_o handle_v the_o matter_n of_o book_n in_o counsel_n yea_o that_o it_o will_v rather_o hinder_v the_o conclusion_n of_o that_o for_o which_o the_o council_n be_v principal_o assemble_v for_o paul_n 4._o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o all_o the_o inquisitor_n and_o of_o many_o famous_a man_n who_o send_v he_o advice_n from_o all_o part_n make_v a_o most_o complete_a catalogue_n to_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v add_v except_o some_o book_n come_v forth_o within_o these_o two_o year_n which_o deserve_v not_o the_o labour_n of_o a_o synod_n but_o he_o that_o will_v allow_v any_o that_o be_v prohibit_v in_o that_o collection_n will_v show_v that_o they_o have_v unaduised_o proceed_v in_o rome_n and_o so_o will_v take_v away_o all_o reputation_n from_o the_o index_n already_o publish_v and_o from_o the_o decree_n itself_o which_o they_o will_v make_v it_o be_v a_o common_a maxim_n that_o new_a law_n do_v remove_v estimation_n more_o from_o themselves_o then_o from_o the_o old_a beside_o say_v becatelli_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o book_n the_o world_n have_v too_o many_o already_o especial_o since_o print_v be_v invent_v and_o it_o be_v better_a to_o forbid_v a_o thousand_o book_n without_o cause_n then_o permit_v one_o that_o deserve_v prohibition_n neither_o be_v it_o fit_v the_o synod_n shall_v be_v trouble_v with_o render_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o prohibition_n make_v censure_n or_o approve_v those_o which_o be_v already_o make_v in_o diverse_a place_n by_o the_o catholic_n for_o it_o will_v be_v to_o call_v for_o contradiction_n it_o belong_v to_o a_o doctor_n to_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o his_o say_n a_o lawmaker_n if_o he_o do_v it_o do_v diminish_v his_o authority_n because_o the_o subject_n do_v wrestle_v with_o the_o reason_n allege_v and_o when_o he_o think_v he_o have_v resolve_v it_o he_o think_v also_o that_o he_o have_v take_v all_o virtue_n from_o the_o precept_n neither_o be_v it_o good_a to_o correct_v or_o purge_v any_o book_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n for_o fear_n of_o make_v man_n say_v that_o something_o be_v omit_v that_o deserve_a and_o something_o change_v that_o do_v not_o deserve_v correction_n moreover_o the_o synod_n will_v incur_v the_o displeasure_n of_o all_o that_o be_v affectionate_a to_o the_o book_n prohibit_v and_o will_v induce_v they_o not_o to_o receive_v the_o other_o necessary_a decree_n which_o shall_v be_v make_v he_o conclude_v that_o the_o index_n of_o paul_n be_v sufficient_a he_o think_v it_o not_o fit_a to_o take_v pain_n in_o vain_a in_o do_v of_o that_o anew_o which_o be_v
condemn_v the_o next_o day_n antonius_n miglicius_n archbishop_n of_o congregation_n the_o emperor_n ambassador_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n prague_n ambassador_n for_o the_o emperor_n be_v receive_v in_o a_o general_a congregation_n and_o his_o mandate_n read_v the_o archbishop_n make_v a_o long_a oration_n reserve_v the_o residue_n to_o master_n sigismond_n tonn_n his_o majesty_n second_o ambassador_n who_o be_v to_o come_v the_o synod_n answer_v that_o they_o be_v very_o glad_a to_o see_v the_o emperor_n ambassador_n and_o that_o they_o do_v admit_v his_o mandate_n the_o ambassador_n will_v have_v precede_v the_o cardinal_n madruccio_n allege_v the_o reason_n and_o pretension_n of_o don_n diego_n in_o the_o first_o council_n but_o by_o the_o legate_n answer_v who_o tell_v he_o how_o that_o business_n be_v end_v he_o be_v satisfy_v and_o sit_v below_o the_o nine_o of_o this_o month_n ferdinandus_n martinez_n mascarenius_n ambassador_n of_o portugal_n be_v receive_v and_o the_o king_n letter_n of_o credence_n and_o mandate_n oration_n the_o portugal_n ambassador_n be_v receive_v &_o a_o doctor_n who_o come_v with_o he_o make_v a_o oration_n read_v a_o doctor_n that_o come_v with_o he_o make_v a_o long_a oration_n in_o which_o he_o show_v the_o benefit_n which_o the_o church_n reap_v by_o counsel_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o present_a the_o cross_n which_o it_o former_o endure_v and_o how_o the_o wisdom_n of_o pope_n pius_n have_v now_o overcome_v they_o he_o say_v the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n be_v so_o great_a that_o their_o decree_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o divine_a oracle_n that_o the_o king_n hope_v that_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n shall_v be_v decide_v in_o that_o council_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o clergy_n direct_v to_o evangelicall_a sincerity_n that_o therefore_o he_o promise_v all_o obedience_n whereof_o the_o bishop_n arrive_v already_o and_o those_o who_o be_v to_o come_v can_v give_v testimony_n he_o show_v the_o piety_n and_o religion_n of_o those_o king_n and_o the_o pain_n they_o have_v take_v to_o subject_v so_o many_o province_n to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n of_o which_o heroical_o pious_a work_n they_o may_v expect_v a_o imitation_n in_o king_n sebastian_n he_o set_v forth_o in_o few_o word_n the_o nobility_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o ambassador_n and_o final_o pray_v the_o father_n to_o hear_v he_o when_o he_o shall_v speak_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n of_o that_o kingdom_n the_o speaker_n brief_o answer_v that_o the_o synod_n be_v well_o please_v with_o the_o king_n mandate_n and_o his_o oration_n and_o that_o the_o piety_n and_o religion_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o of_o his_o ancestor_n be_v general_o know_v and_o their_o glory_n conspicuous_a for_o maintain_v the_o catholic_a religion_n in_o that_o kingdom_n in_o these_o turbulent_a time_n and_o spread_v of_o it_o in_o place_n far_o remote_a for_o which_o the_o synod_n do_v give_v thanks_n to_o god_n and_o receive_v the_o king_n mandate_n with_o due_a respect_n in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o eleven_o the_o other_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n congregation_n the_o emperor_n second_o ambassador_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n present_v himself_o who_o be_v receive_v without_o much_o ceremony_n because_o the_o mandate_n have_v be_v read_v before_o so_o that_o there_o be_v time_n to_o treat_v of_o conciliarie_n matter_n whereof_o some_o thing_n be_v speak_v liberty_n be_v give_v to_o the_o legate_n to_o elect_a father_n to_o consider_v of_o the_o index_n and_o other_o to_o frame_v the_o decree_n against_o the_o next_o session_n for_o the_o business_n of_o the_o book_n censure_n and_o index_n the_o legate_n name_v the_o ambassador_n of_o hungary_n the_o patriarch_n of_o venice_n four_o archbishop_n nine_o bishop_n one_o abbot_n and_o two_o general_n the_o thirteen_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n come_v to_o the_o legate_n and_o legate_n the_o emperor_n ambassador_n make_v five_o request_n to_o the_o legate_n make_v five_o request_n which_o they_o leave_v in_o writing_n that_o they_o may_v consider_v on_o they_o that_o the_o word_n continuation_n shall_v not_o be_v use_v because_o it_o will_v make_v the_o protestant_n refuse_v the_o council_n that_o the_o next_o session_n shall_v be_v defer_v or_o at_o the_o least_o matter_n of_o small_a weight_n handle_v that_o the_o confessionist_n shall_v not_o be_v exasperate_v in_o the_o beginning_n by_o condemn_v their_o book_n that_o a_o large_a safe_a conduct_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o protestant_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o congregation_n shall_v be_v conceal_v which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v diwlge_v even_o to_o the_o common_a people_n and_o have_v offer_v all_o favour_n and_o assistance_n in_o the_o emperor_n name_n they_o add_v that_o they_o have_v order_n from_o his_o majesty_n that_o if_o they_o be_v call_v by_o their_o most_o reverend_a lordship_n they_o shall_v give_v their_o advice_n in_o matter_n of_o the_o council_n and_o employ_v his_o authority_n to_o favour_v they_o the_o legate_n answer_v the_o seventeenth_o day_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o give_v answer_v to_o who_o the_o legate_n answer_v satisfaction_n to_o all_o as_o they_o will_v not_o name_v the_o continuation_n at_o their_o request_n so_o not_o to_o provoke_v the_o spaniard_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o abstain_v from_o the_o contrary_a that_o they_o will_v spend_v the_o next_o session_n in_o general_a and_o light_a matter_n and_o allow_v a_o long_a time_n for_o other_o that_o they_o will_v not_o then_o condemn_v the_o augustan_n confession_n that_o they_o will_v not_o then_o speak_v of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o confessionist_n but_o will_v make_v the_o index_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n that_o a_o large_a safe-conduct_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o german_n when_o it_o be_v decide_v whether_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o they_o apart_o or_o together_o with_o other_o nation_n that_o they_o will_v take_v a_o good_a course_n for_o secrecy_n and_o impart_v unto_o they_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v handle_v be_v assure_v of_o the_o emperor_n good_a affection_n and_o that_o the_o ambassador_n be_v correspondent_a to_o the_o piety_n and_o religion_n of_o their_o master_n george_n droscovitius_n bishop_n of_o the_o five_o church_n the_o emperor_n three_o ambassador_n who_o come_v to_o trent_n the_o month_n before_o present_v his_o mandate_n in_o congregation_n the_o bishop_n of_o five_o church_n the_o emperor_n three_o ambassador_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n the_o general_a congregation_n the_o four_o and_o twenty_o of_o february_n and_o make_v a_o oration_n in_o which_o he_o enlarge_v himself_o in_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o emperor_n say_v that_o god_n have_v give_v he_o to_o these_o time_n to_o provide_v against_o so_o many_o misery_n he_o compare_v he_o to_o constantine_n in_o favour_v the_o church_n show_v what_o pain_n he_o have_v take_v for_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n and_o that_o have_v obtain_v it_o he_o have_v before_o all_o other_o prince_n send_v ambassador_n two_o for_o the_o empire_n kingdom_n of_o bohemia_n and_o austria_n and_o himself_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o hungary_n he_o present_v his_o mandate_n and_o thank_v the_o synod_n for_o give_v he_o place_n fit_v the_o quality_n of_o a_o ambassador_n before_o they_o see_v the_o purpose_n of_o his_o ambassage_n the_o decree_n be_v make_v in_o general_a term_n and_o read_v as_o well_o to_o satisfy_v the_o imperialist_n as_o because_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o well_o digest_v which_o be_v do_v mantua_n give_v a_o modest_a and_o grave_a admonition_n to_o the_o father_n to_o keep_v secret_a what_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o congregation_n as_o well_o to_o avoid_v opposition_n as_o because_o thing_n be_v hold_v in_o great_a reputation_n and_o reverence_n when_o they_o be_v not_o know_v to_o all_o beside_o that_o it_o will_v be_v dishonourable_a for_o that_o assembly_n if_o any_o thing_n be_v publish_v as_o might_n happen_v often_o without_o convenient_a circumspection_n and_o fit_a seemelinesse_n he_o add_v that_o there_o be_v no_o college_n or_o council_n secular_a or_o ecclesiastical_a small_a or_o great_a which_o have_v not_o its_o secret_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o oath_n or_o upon_o penalty_n but_o that_o synod_n consist_v of_o wise_a man_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v tie_v but_o by_o the_o bond_n of_o their_o own_o judgement_n that_o in_o say_v thus_o he_o speak_v no_o more_o to_o the_o father_n then_o to_o his_o colleague_n and_o to_o himself_o every_o one_o be_v oblige_v to_o admonish_v himself_o in_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v seemly_a then_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o safe_a conduct_n and_o exhort_v every_o one_o to_o think_v exact_o of_o it_o say_v that_o if_o it_o can_v not_o be_v determine_v before_o the_o session_n a_o addition_n shall_v be_v make_v to_o the_o decree_n that_o it_o may_v be_v
he_o have_v not_o be_v forbid_v then_o by_o any_o other_o diverse_a other_o opposition_n be_v make_v by_o those_o who_o more_o willing_o censure_v the_o action_n o●_n other_o when_o they_o proceed_v from_o eminent_a person_n which_o because_o they_o be_v of_o no_o great_a moment_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o a_o history_n the_o pope_n be_v advise_v of_o the_o hold_n of_o the_o session_n and_o of_o that_o which_o happen_v in_o it_o be_v very_o glad_a as_o deliver_v from_o the_o fear_n he_o apprehend_v that_o in_o the_o contention_n about_o the_o cup_n his_o authority_n will_v be_v draw_v into_o disputation_n and_o because_o this_o way_n of_o compose_v difference_n by_o refer_v they_o unto_o he_o be_v open_v he_o hope_v the_o like_a may_v be_v do_v in_o the_o article_n of_o residence_n or_o in_o any_o other_o that_o shall_v be_v controversed_a by_o which_o mean_v the_o council_n will_v be_v end_v quick_o but_o he_o foresee_v two_o cause_n which_o may_v cross_v his_o design_n one_o the_o come_n of_o the_o card._n of_o lorraine_n with_o the_o french_a bishop_n which_o do_v much_o trouble_v he_o especial_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o vast_a thought_n of_o that_o prelate_n much_o contrary_n to_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o council_n the_o pope_n plot_v to_o make_v a_o mayor_n part_n in_o the_o council_n papacy_n so_o incorporate_v in_o he_o that_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o conceal_v they_o for_o which_o he_o see_v no_o remedy_n but_o by_o make_v the_o italian_n so_o far_o exceed_v the_o vltramontans_n that_o in_o their_o voice_n they_o shall_v not_o pass_v for_o a_o considerable_a number_n therefore_o he_o continual_o solicit_v all_o the_o bishop_n whether_o titular_a or_o other_o who_o have_v renounce_v to_o go_v to_o trent_n offer_v to_o bear_v their_o charge_n and_o load_v they_o with_o promise_n he_o think_v also_o to_o send_v a_o number_n of_o abbat_n as_o have_v be_v do_v in_o some_o counsel_n but_o be_v advise_v better_a he_o think_v it_o fit_v not_o to_o show_v so_o much_o affection_n nor_o to_o provoke_v other_o to_o do_v the_o like_a he_o fear_v another_o cross_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o purpose_n which_o he_o have_v discover_v in_o all_o prince_n to_o hold_v the_o council_n open_a with_o do_v of_o nothing_o in_o the_o emperor_n to_o gratify_v the_o dutchman_n and_o to_o gain_v their_o favour_n in_o the_o election_n of_o his_o son_n to_o be_v king_n of_o the_o roman_n in_o the_o french_a king_n to_o work_v his_o will_n with_o the_o same_o man_n and_o with_o the_o hugonot_n he_o consider_v much_o of_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o ambassador_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o council_n of_o secular_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o that_o of_o the_o bishop_n think_v that_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o prelate_n will_v be_v dangerous_a without_o the_o presence_n and_o presidence_n of_o the_o legate_n to_o keep_v they_o in_o order_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o ambassador_n much_o more_o may_v handle_v thing_n prejudicial_a and_o that_o there_o be_v danger_n if_o they_o continue_v that_o they_o may_v bring_v in_o some_o prelate_n in_o regard_n there_o be_v ecclesiastique_n among_o they_o and_o so_o use_v licence_n under_o the_o name_n of_o liberty_n in_o this_o perplexity_n he_o conceive_v hope_n because_o he_o see_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o ambassador_n oppose_v the_o proposition_n and_o that_o none_o be_v combine_v but_o only_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o of_o the_o french_a king_n who_o have_v no_o prelate_n can_v prevail_v but_o little_a notwithstanding_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o solicit_v the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o council_n and_o to_o cherish_v the_o division_n which_o he_o see_v among_o the_o ambassador_n therefore_o he_o write_v immediate_o that_o they_o shall_v hold_v congregation_n often_o and_o digest_v and_o put_v in_o order_n the_o matter_n quick_o and_o because_o to_o give_v one_o thanks_n do_v oblige_v he_o to_o persevere_v he_o command_v that_o the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n &_o of_o the_o swiss_n and_o the_o secretary_n of_o the_o marquis_n of_o pescara_n shall_v be_v commend_v and_o hearty_o thank_v on_o his_o part_n for_o refuse_v to_o consent_v with_o other_o to_o a_o impertinent_a proposition_n he_o cause_v thanks_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o venetian_n and_o florentine_a for_o the_o good_a intention_n they_o show_v in_o deny_v to_o come_v to_o the_o congregation_n pray_v they_o not_o to_o refuse_v to_o come_v hereafter_o if_o they_o be_v call_v because_o he_o know_v their_o presence_n will_v ever_o be_v serviceable_a to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o hinder_v the_o bad_a design_n of_o other_o neither_o be_v his_o holiness_n deceive_v in_o his_o opinion_n for_o it_o make_v they_o all_o say_v that_o they_o have_v do_v so_o because_o in_o those_o time_n the_o service_n of_o god_n do_v require_v that_o the_o pope_n authority_n shall_v be_v defend_v resolve_v to_o persevere_v in_o that_o resolution_n and_o they_o profess_v they_o be_v more_o oblige_v by_o the_o courteous_a thanks_n of_o his_o holiness_n for_o do_v that_o to_o which_o their_o duty_n do_v bind_v they_o the_o seven_o book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o custom_n of_o those_o who_o write_v history_n be_v history_n the_o form_n of_o this_o history_n to_o propose_v in_o the_o beginning_n a_o model_n of_o what_o they_o mean_v to_o handle_v which_o i_o have_v think_v fit_a to_o defer_v until_o this_o place_n make_v it_o a_o abstract_n of_o the_o which_o be_v relate_v already_o and_o a_o design_n of_o that_o which_o be_v to_o follow_v have_v resolve_v to_o give_v to_o the_o memorial_n which_o i_o have_v collect_v some_o form_n which_o may_v not_o exceed_v my_o power_n and_o yet_o best_a befit_v the_o matter_n i_o consider_v that_o of_o all_o the_o negotiation_n which_o have_v happen_v among_o christian_n in_o this_o world_n or_o perhaps_o will_v happen_v hereafter_o this_o be_v the_o most_o principal_a and_o that_o most_o man_n be_v desirous_a to_o know_v whatsoever_o do_v belong_v to_o that_o which_o they_o do_v esteem_v even_o the_o least_o thing_n of_o all_o therefore_o i_o think_v first_o that_o the_o form_n of_o a_o diary_n will_v best_o agree_v to_o this_o subject_n but_o two_o opposition_n do_v cross_v my_o opinion_n one_o that_o that_o form_n can_v not_o befit_v the_o occurrence_n of_o twenty_o nine_o year_n spend_v in_o make_v preparation_n for_o the_o birth_n of_o this_o council_n nor_o of_o the_o fourteen_o year_n which_o pass_v while_o it_o sleep_v it_o not_o be_v know_v whether_o it_o be_v alive_a or_o dead_a another_o that_o all_o the_o matter_n which_o a_o continuate_a diary_n do_v require_v can_v not_o possible_o be_v find_v therefore_o fit_v the_o form_n to_o the_o matter_n as_o nature_n do_v not_o the_o matter_n to_o the_o form_n as_o the_o school_n i_o think_v it_o not_o absurd_a to_o write_v the_o preparatory_a and_o interconciliary_a time_n by_o way_n of_o annal_n and_o in_o those_o of_o the_o celebration_n to_o make_v a_o diary_n of_o the_o occurrence_n of_o those_o day_n the_o knowledge_n whereof_o i_o be_v able_a to_o attain_v hope_v that_o whosoever_o shall_v read_v this_o treatise_n will_v excuse_v the_o omission_n of_o those_o which_o can_v not_o be_v know_v for_o if_o of_o thing_n the_o entire_a memory_n of_o which_o those_o who_o have_v interest_n do_v labour_n by_o all_o mean_n to_o preserve_v often_o time_n a_o great_a part_n be_v quick_o lose_v how_o much_o more_o will_v it_o happen_v in_o this_o which_o many_o man_n of_o great_a place_n and_o exact_a judgement_n have_v use_v all_o diligence_n and_o spare_v no_o pain_n whole_o to_o conceal_v it_o be_v true_a that_o matter_n of_o great_a weight_n ought_v to_o be_v hold_v in_o a_o mystery_n when_o it_o be_v for_o the_o common_a good_a but_o when_o it_o do_v damnify_v one_o and_o profit_v another_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o man_n who_o have_v contrary_a end_n do_v proceed_v in_o contrary_a course_n the_o common_a and_o famous_a say_n of_o the_o lawyer_n be_v true_a that_o his_o cause_n be_v more_o to_o be_v favour_v who_o labour_v to_o avoid_v loss_n then_o as_o who_o seek_v gain_v for_o these_o cause_v this_o treatise_n of_o i_o be_v subject_a to_o some_o disequalitie_n of_o narration_n and_o howbeit_o i_o may_v say_v that_o as_o much_o may_v be_v find_v in_o some_o famous_a writer_n yet_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v my_o defence_n but_o this_o that_o if_o other_o have_v avoid_v it_o they_o have_v not_o write_v the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n nor_o any_o other_o like_a unto_o it_o the_o ambassador_n of_o france_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o session_n be_v end_v receive_v ambassador_n the_o petition_n of_o the_o french_a ambassador_n letter_n from_o their_o king_n that_o they_o shall_v make_v instance_n
for_o the_o defer_v of_o it_o wherefore_o though_o the_o time_n be_v past_a they_o come_v to_o the_o legate_n and_o tell_v they_o they_o have_v a_o new_a commission_n from_o the_o king_n to_o make_v request_n that_o they_o will_v labour_v in_o the_o reformation_n and_o for_o point_n of_o doctrine_n expect_v the_o come_n of_o his_o prelate_n add_v that_o if_o the_o matter_n of_o order_n and_o matrimony_n be_v dispute_v by_o the_o divine_n and_o handle_v by_o the_o prelate_n no_o more_o point_n of_o doctrine_n will_v remain_v and_o the_o come_n of_o the_o frenchman_n will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n wherefore_o then_o request_n be_v that_o they_o will_v be_v please_v to_o defer_v they_o until_o the_o end_n of_o october_n employ_v themselves_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o reformation_n or_o one_o day_n in_o that_o and_o another_o in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n not_o defer_v as_o they_o have_v do_v all_o the_o matter_n of_o reformation_n until_o the_o last_o day_n immediate_o before_o the_o session_n so_o that_o there_o scarce_o remain_v time_n so_o much_o as_o to_o see_v the_o article_n much_o less_o to_o consult_v upon_o they_o the_o legate_n answer_v that_o their_o proposition_n do_v desire_v to_o be_v weigh_v well_o answer_v to_o which_o the_o legate_n answer_v and_o that_o they_o will_v be_v careful_a to_o give_v they_o all_o possible_a satisfaction_n demand_v a_o copy_n of_o their_o instruction_n that_o they_o may_v resolve_v the_o better_a the_o ambassador_n give_v they_o a_o writing_n of_o this_o tenor_n that_o the_o king_n have_v see_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o sixteenth_o of_o july_n concern_v the_o communion_n sub_fw-la utraque_fw-la and_o defer_v two_o article_n in_o the_o same_o matter_n and_o those_o propose_v in_o the_o congregation_n concern_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n howsoever_o he_o commend_v that_o which_o be_v do_v yet_o he_o can_v conceal_v that_o which_o be_v general_o speak_v that_o be_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o discipline_n and_o manner_n be_v either_o quite_o omit_v or_o slender_o handle_v and_o the_o controversed_a point_n in_o religion_n in_o which_o all_o the_o father_n do_v agree_v hasty_o determine_v which_o although_o he_o think_v to_o be_v false_a yet_o he_o desire_v that_o the_o proposition_n of_o his_o ambassador_n may_v be_v expound_v as_o necessary_a to_o provide_v for_o the_o good_a of_o christendom_n and_o the_o calamity_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o have_v find_v by_o experence_n that_o neither_o severity_n nor_o moderation_n have_v be_v able_a to_o reduce_v those_o who_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n he_o think_v fit_a to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o general_n council_n which_o he_o have_v obtain_v of_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o be_v sorry_a that_o the_o tumult_n of_o france_n do_v hinder_v the_o come_n of_o his_o prelate_n that_o he_o see_v well_o that_o the_o constancy_n and_o rigour_n in_o continue_v the_o form_n begin_v by_o the_o legate_n and_o bishop_n be_v not_o fit_a to_o reconcile_v peace_n and_o make_v a_o unity_n in_o the_o church_n that_o his_o desire_n be_v that_o nothing_o may_v be_v do_v to_o alien_n the_o mind_n of_o the_o adversary_n now_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o council_n but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v invite_v and_o in_o case_n they_o come_v receive_v as_o child_n with_o all_o humanity_n hope_v that_o by_o this_o mean_n they_o will_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v teach_v and_o bring_v back_o to_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n and_o because_o all_o that_o be_v in_o trent_n do_v profess_v the_o same_o religion_n and_o neither_o can_v nor_o will_v make_v doubt_n of_o any_o part_n thereof_o he_o think_v the_o disputation_n and_o censure_n in_o point_n of_o religion_n to_o be_v not_o only_o superfluous_a but_o impertinent_a for_o the_o catholic_n and_o a_o cause_n to_o separate_v the_o adversary_n the_o more_o for_o he_o that_o think_v they_o will_v receive_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n in_o which_o they_o have_v not_o assist_v do_v not_o know_v they_o well_o neither_o will_v any_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o this_o mean_n but_o argument_n minister_v of_o write_v more_o book_n therefore_o the_o king_n think_v it_o better_a to_o omit_v the_o matter_n of_o religion_n until_o the_o other_o of_o reformation_n be_v well_o set_v in_o order_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o scope_n at_o which_o every_o one_o must_v aim_v that_o the_o council_n which_o now_o be_v great_a and_o will_v be_v great_a by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o frenchman_n may_v produce_v fruit_n afterward_o the_o king_n demand_v that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o absence_n of_o his_o bishop_n the_o next_o session_n may_v be_v put_v off_o until_o the_o end_n of_o october_n or_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o decree_v defer_v or_o a_o new_a order_n expect_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o he_o have_v write_v labour_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o reformation_n and_o because_o he_o understand_v that_o the_o ancient_a liberty_n of_o counsel_n be_v not_o observe_v that_o king_n and_o prince_n or_o their_o ambassador_n may_v declare_v the_o necessity_n of_o their_o state_n his_o majesty_n demand_v that_o their_o authority_n may_v be_v preserve_v and_o all_o revoke_v which_o have_v be_v do_v to_o the_o contrary_n the_o same_o day_n the_o emperor_n ambassador_n come_v to_o the_o legate_n require_v ambassador_n the_o petition_n of_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n that_o the_o article_n send_v by_o his_o majesty_n and_o present_v by_o they_o may_v be_v propose_v and_o be_v very_o earnest_a that_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n may_v be_v defer_v until_o the_o come_n of_o the_o frenchman_n and_o that_o the_o reformation_n may_v be_v serviceable_a not_o only_o for_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o for_o the_o church_n of_o every_o particular_a kingdom_n their_o desire_n be_v that_o two_o of_o every_o nation_n may_v be_v depute_v to_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o that_o which_o do_v deserve_v to_o be_v propose_v and_o discuss_v in_o council_n the_o legate_n make_v a_o common_a answer_n to_o they_o both_o that_o they_o can_v not_o alter_v without_o great_a prejudice_n the_o order_n set_v down_o which_o be_v to_o handle_v doctrine_n and_o reformation_n both_o together_o and_z if_o they_o shall_v that_o other_o prince_n will_v oppose_v but_o to_o content_v they_o they_o will_v ordain_v that_o the_o divine_n and_o prelate_n shall_v examine_v the_o matter_n of_o order_n only_o and_o afterward_o handle_v some_o point_n of_o reformation_n observe_v still_o the_o former_a use_n that_o every_o one_o of_o what_o condition_n soever_o may_v put_v they_o the_o legate_n in_o mind_n of_o what_o they_o think_v necessary_a profitable_a or_o convenient_a which_o be_v a_o great_a liberty_n then_o to_o have_v two_o depute_a for_o every_o nation_n and_o afterward_o they_o will_v treat_v of_o matrimony_n the_o ambassador_n be_v not_o one_o jot_n content_v the_o legate_n send_v all_o their_o demand_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o frenchman_n complain_v to_o all_o man_n of_o this_o austerity_n and_o for_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v late_o command_v other_o prelate_n to_o go_v to_o the_o council_n that_o he_o may_v exceed_v in_o number_n which_o the_o papalin_n themselves_o do_v not_o like_v shall_v be_v do_v so_o open_o and_o just_a when_o the_o news_n be_v spread_v of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o frenchman_n desire_v to_o be_v secure_v by_o a_o mayor_n part_n yet_o so_o as_o not_o to_o have_v it_o know_v for_o what_o cause_n it_o be_v do_v but_o the_o pope_n do_v of_o set_a purpose_n proceed_v 〈◊〉_d open_o that_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n may_v know_v that_o his_o attempt_n will_v be_v in_o vain_a and_o so_o resolve_v not_o to_o come_v or_o that_o the_o frenchman_n may_v take_v some_o ●easion_n to_o make_v the_o council_n dissolve_v neither_o be_v the_o pope_n o●●ly_o of_o 〈…〉_o pinion_v but_o all_o the_o court_n fear_v some_o great_a prejudice_n by_o the_o cardinal_n design_n which_o howsoever_o they_o may_v not_o succeed_v a_o thing_n which_o they_o can_v scarce_o hope_v hope_v 〈…〉_o yet_o his_o come_n only_o will_v hinder_v prolong_v and_o disturb_v the_o council_n ferra●●_n tell_v lorraine_n his_o kinsman_n 〈◊〉_d his_o journey_n will_v be_v of_o no_o moment_n and_o of_o small_a reputation_n to_o himself_o in_o regard_n he_o will_v arr●ue_v after_o all_o be_v determine_v and_o biancheto_o a_o familiar_a friend_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o armignac_n who_o also_o have_v credit_n with_o lorraine_n 〈◊〉_d as_o much_o to_o they_o both_o and_o the_o secretary_n of_o seripando_n who_o have_v 〈…〉_o ritie_n 〈◊〉_d the_o precedent_n ferrier_n ●olde_v he_o the_o same_o all_o which_o be_v though_o too_o be_v do_v 〈◊〉_d by_o commission_n from_o the_o pope_n or_o to_o please_v he_o at_o the_o least_o but_o t●●ir_a care_n of_o the_o action_n of_o the_o
be_v neither_o honest_a nor_o profitable_a to_o favour_v one_o with_o the_o disseruice_n of_o another_o that_o every_o one_o will_v have_v the_o glory_n to_o procure_v the_o reformation_n and_o yet_o persevere_v in_o the_o abuse_n lay_v the_o burden_n upon_o the_o pope_n only_o the_o cardinal_n discourse_v also_o that_o for_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o pope_n himself_o he_o will_v not_o say_v what_o the_o mind_n of_o his_o holiness_n be_v but_o for_o that_o which_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v touch_v he_o how_o can_v any_o one_o persuade_v himself_o that_o he_o will_v not_o condescend_v but_o that_o he_o know_v that_o which_o be_v unknown_a to_o other_o because_o the_o respect_n of_o all_o be_v refer_v unto_o he_o alone_o he_o say_v moreover_o that_o the_o experience_n of_o these_o fifteen_o month_n since_o the_o open_n of_o the_o council_n have_v show_v that_o the_o pretension_n be_v multiply_v and_o the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n increase_v and_o do_v still_o proceed_v forward_o to_o the_o height_n that_o in_o case_n it_o shall_v continue_v long_o some_o notable_a scandal_n must_v necessary_o happen_v he_o tell_v he_o of_o the_o jealousy_n which_o do_v possess_v the_o prince_n of_o germany_n and_o the_o hugonot_n of_o france_n and_o conclude_v that_o see_v it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o council_n can_v do_v no_o good_a it_o be_v expedient_a to_o finish_v it_o in_o the_o best_a manner_n it_o be_v possible_a it_o be_v say_v that_o those_o prince_n be_v persuade_v that_o they_o can_v never_o obtain_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a by_o mean_n of_o the_o council_n and_o therefore_o think_v it_o better_a to_o bury_v it_o with_o honour_n and_o that_o they_o give_v their_o word_n to_o that_o cardinal_n to_o use_v connivencie_n hereafter_o and_o not_o to_o take_v it_o ill_a if_o the_o council_n be_v end_v and_o he_o that_o shall_v observe_v what_o end_n the_o hereafter_o who_o give_v his_o word_n to_o connive_v hereafter_o council_n have_v and_o that_o those_o prince_n have_v no_o satisfaction_n in_o any_o of_o their_o demand_n will_v easy_o believe_v that_o the_o fame_n be_v true_a but_o consider_v on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o emperor_n minister_n do_v not_o cease_v after_o this_o negotiation_n he_o will_v think_v it_o a_o vain_a rumour_n but_o to_o avoid_v both_o the_o absurdity_n one_o may_v believe_v that_o those_o prince_n do_v then_o lay_v hope_n aside_o and_o resolve_v not_o to_o oppose_v the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n yet_o so_o as_o that_o they_o hold_v it_o not_o honourable_a to_o make_v a_o sudden_a retreat_n but_o to_o remit_v their_o instance_n by_o degree_n that_o they_o may_v not_o publish_v their_o want_n of_o judgement_n for_o conceive_v hope_n of_o good_a by_o that_o mean_n and_o for_o not_o believe_v the_o observation_n of_o saint_n gregory_n nazianzen_n who_o testify_v that_o contention_n have_v always_o be_v increase_v by_o the_o episcopal_a assembly_n the_o truth_n of_o this_o particular_a i_o put_v in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o thing_n the_o knowledge_n whereof_o i_o can_v attain_v unto_o but_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o catastrophe_n of_o the_o council_n which_o it_o be_v think_v can_v not_o possible_o have_v a_o quiet_a conclusion_n have_v beginning_n in_o this_o time_n the_o eight_o book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o seventeenth_o of_o may_n cardinal_n morone_n return_v to_o trent_n from_o his_o legation_n in_o ispruc_n and_o the_o legate_n present_o begin_v to_o treat_v among_o themselves_o about_o the_o certain_a day_n of_o the_o session_n because_o the_o twenty_o be_v near_a when_o it_o be_v to_o be_v determine_v and_o because_o they_o know_v not_o when_o the_o matter_n will_v be_v in_o order_n in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o nineteenth_o day_n a_o prorogation_n be_v make_v until_o the_o ten_o of_o june_n to_o determine_v then_o the_o prefix_a time_n in_o that_o congregation_n two_o notable_a thing_n do_v happen_v one_o be_v the_o contention_n whether_o it_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o legate_n or_o to_o the_o council_n to_o determine_v legate_n a_o question_n about_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o legate_n whether_o the_o proctor_n of_o the_o bishop_n ought_v to_o be_v admit_v in_o congregation_n begin_v as_o we_o have_v say_v by_o lansac_n the_o french_a prelate_n do_v maintain_v that_o the_o legate_n have_v no_o other_o prerogative_n but_o to_o be_v the_o first_o and_o have_v no_o authority_n as_o they_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n allege_v the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o other_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o council_n can_v not_o be_v lawful_a except_o it_o be_v call_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o he_o only_o to_o determine_v who_o may_v assist_v and_o have_v voice_n in_o it_o and_o that_o to_o give_v this_o power_n to_o the_o council_n will_v be_v to_o give_v it_o authority_n to_o generate_v itself_o after_o some_o contention_n the_o matter_n do_v remain_v undecided_a in_o give_v of_o voice_n concern_v the_o abuse_n of_o order_n another_o question_n succeed_v for_o the_o bishop_n of_o philodelphia_n make_v a_o great_a and_o a_o long_a exclamation_n that_o cardinal_n have_v bishopriques_n without_o maintain_v so_o much_o as_o a_o suffragan_n which_o be_v much_o deride_v by_o many_o as_o if_o the_o bishop_n be_v but_o titular_a have_v speak_v for_o the_o interest_n of_o himself_o and_o of_o such_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o 21._o of_o may_v the_o count_n of_o luna_n be_v receive_v congregation_n the_o count_n of_o luna_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n forty_o day_n after_o his_o arrival_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o difficulty_n for_o precedence_n with_o the_o french_a ambassador_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n many_o consultation_n be_v hold_v to_o compose_v they_o but_o the_o french_a will_v by_o no_o mean_n yield_v that_o he_o shall_v have_v any_o place_n but_o below_o and_o after_o they_o whereupon_o he_o think_v to_o stand_v on_o his_o foot_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o place_n among_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n who_o have_v order_n from_o their_o master_n to_o accompany_v he_o and_o to_o stand_v by_o they_o until_o he_o have_v finish_v his_o oration_n and_o then_o to_o return_v present_o to_o his_o house_n but_o this_o seem_v dishonourable_a for_o the_o king_n therefore_o he_o labour_v to_o persuade_v the_o french_a not_o to_o enter_v in_o congregation_n that_o day_n whereunto_o they_o not_o consent_v he_o think_v to_o force_v they_o to_o it_o by_o make_v some_o spanish_a prelate_n demand_n that_o secular_a ambassador_n may_v not_o assist_v in_o the_o congregation_n because_o they_o be_v never_o admit_v in_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n but_o think_v that_o this_o will_v offend_v all_o prince_n he_o purpose_v to_o use_v mean_n that_o some_o prelate_n shall_v propose_v the_o handle_n of_o some_o thing_n at_o which_o it_o will_v not_o be_v reasonable_a that_o the_o french_a ambassador_n shall_v be_v present_a as_o may_v be_v the_o preiudices_fw-la which_o may_v come_v to_o christendom_n by_o the_o capitulation_n make_v with_o the_o hugonot_n or_o some_o such_o thing_n this_o come_v to_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n put_v another_o course_n in_o his_o head_n and_o consult_v with_o the_o other_o french_a man_n they_o resolve_v not_o to_o contest_v any_o more_o if_o a_o place_n be_v give_v he_o a_o part_n out_o of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o ambassador_n therefore_o the_o count_n enter_v into_o the_o congregation_n the_o day_n before_o mention_v and_o come_v to_o the_o place_n assign_v for_o he_o which_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o place_n his_o protestation_n about_o place_n the_o assembly_n over_o against_o the_o legate_n he_o present_v the_o mandate_n of_o his_o king_n which_o be_v read_v by_o the_o secretary_n he_o immediate_o protest_v that_o howsoever_o in_o that_o and_o all_o other_o place_n he_o ought_v to_o be_v next_o after_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n yet_o because_o that_o place_n the_o cause_n which_o be_v handle_v and_o the_o time_n do_v not_o comport_v that_o the_o course_n of_o divine_a matter_n and_o of_o the_o public_a welfare_n shall_v be_v hinder_v by_o humane_a contention_n he_o do_v receive_v the_o place_n give_v he_o but_o protest_v that_o his_o modesty_n and_o the_o respect_n he_o have_v not_o to_o hinder_v the_o progress_n of_o the_o council_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o dignity_n and_o right_n of_o his_o prince_n philip_n the_o catholic_a king_n nor_o of_o his_o posterity_n but_o that_o they_o remain_v entire_a so_o that_o they_o may_v always_o make_v use_n of_o they_o as_o if_o his_o due_a place_n have_v now_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o require_v that_o his_o protestation_n may_v be_v write_v in_o the_o
interim_n of_o germany_n which_o can_v not_o be_v do_v by_o any_o other_o mean_n because_o it_o be_v to_o continue_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n and_o to_o continue_v it_o long_o can_v not_o be_v without_o great_a damage_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o finish_v the_o general_a council_n in_o trent_n to_o hinder_v a_o nationall_n in_o france_n for_o the_o manner_n he_o say_v it_o may_v be_v end_v with_o one_o session_n handle_v in_o it_o the_o residue_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o dispatch_v the_o catechism_n and_o the_o index_n of_o the_o book_n prohibit_v which_o be_v in_o order_n already_o refer_v other_o matter_n to_o the_o pope_n not_o dispute_v the_o article_n of_o indulgence_n and_o image_n nor_o anathematise_v particular_a heretic_n but_o proceed_v with_o general_a term_n only_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o some_o sort_n to_o finish_v the_o council_n except_o the_o archbishop_n of_o granata_n who_o refer_v himself_o to_o the_o ambassador_n of_o his_o king_n some_o say_v it_o can_v not_o absolute_o be_v end_v because_o so_o many_o matter_n do_v remain_v to_o be_v handle_v but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v do_v by_o intimate_v another_o ten_o year_n after_o which_o also_o will_v serve_v to_o hinder_v the_o call_n of_o nationall_n counsel_n and_o to_o defer_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o thing_n remain_v and_o the_o anathematism_n the_o bishop_n of_o brescia_n propose_v a_o middle_a course_n between_o a_o absolute_a end_n and_o a_o suspension_n because_o the_o former_a will_v make_v the_o heretic_n desperate_a and_o the_o latter_a not_o satisfy_v the_o catholic_n but_o these_o opinion_n have_v no_o follower_n all_o the_o other_o adhere_v to_o that_o which_o the_o cardinal_n have_v say_v for_o the_o manner_n otranto_n think_v it_o necessary_a to_o anathematise_v the_o heretic_n because_o it_o have_v be_v use_v in_o all_o counsel_n and_o be_v the_o principal_a thing_n which_o be_v require_v of_o synod_n for_o many_o be_v not_o capable_a to_o understand_v the_o truth_n or_o falsehood_n of_o opinion_n by_o their_o own_o judgement_n but_o do_v follow_v or_o abhor_v they_o according_a to_o the_o credit_n or_o discredit_v of_o the_o author_n he_o say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n full_a of_o learned_a man_n to_o clear_v themselves_o whether_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o ciros_n be_v a_o catholic_a or_o not_o will_v not_o hear_v a_o account_n of_o his_o faith_n which_o he_o desire_v to_o render_v but_o only_o wish_v he_o to_o denounce_v a_o plain_a anathema_n against_o nestorius_n that_o if_o luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la dead_a and_o their_o follower_n alive_a be_v not_o anathematise_v it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o the_o council_n have_v labour_v in_o vain_a the_o cardinal_n reply_v that_o diverse_a time_n do_v require_v diverse_a counsel_n that_o the_o difference_n in_o religion_n be_v then_o between_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o priest_n that_o the_o people_n be_v but_o as_o a_o accessary_n that_o the_o grandee_n either_o do_v not_o meddle_v or_o if_o they_o do_v adhere_v to_o any_o heresy_n they_o do_v not_o make_v themselves_o head_n and_o leader_n but_o now_o all_o be_v quite_o contrary_a because_o the_o heretic_n minister_n and_o preacher_n can_v not_o be_v say_v to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o sect_n but_o the_o prince_n rather_o to_o who_o interest_n their_o minister_n and_o preacher_n do_v accommodate_v themselves_o he_o that_o will_v name_v the_o true_a head_n of_o heretic_n must_v name_v the_o queen_n of_o england_n the_o queen_n of_o navarre_n the_o prince_n of_o conde_n the_o elector_n palatine_n of_o the_o rhine_n the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n and_o many_o other_o duke_n and_o prince_n of_o germany_n he_o say_v that_o this_o will_v make_v they_o unite_v and_o show_v they_o be_v sensible_a of_o it_o and_o that_o the_o condemnation_n of_o luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la only_o will_v so_o provoke_v they_o that_o some_o great_a confusion_n will_v certain_o arise_v therefore_o to_o do_v not_o what_o they_o will_v but_o what_o they_o can_v he_o think_v that_o the_o more_o universal_a resolution_n be_v the_o better_a morone_n send_v to_o call_v the_o ecclesiastical_a ambassador_n to_o who_o have_v impart_v the_o proposition_n and_o opinion_n of_o that_o assembly_n they_o consent_v to_o the_o end_n and_o the_o manner_n according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o lorraine_n which_o resolution_n be_v also_o communicate_v to_o the_o secular_a ambassador_n they_o do_v all_o assent_n except_o the_o spaniard_n who_o say_v he_o know_v not_o the_o express_a will_n of_o his_o king_n and_o desire_a time_n that_o he_o may_v understand_v it_o notwithstanding_o this_o the_o legate_n resolute_a to_o execute_v this_o determination_n give_v the_o matter_n concern_v prince_n omit_v the_o anathematism_n and_o all_o the_o particular_a article_n only_o renew_v the_o old_a canon_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a liberty_n and_o jurisdiction_n speak_v of_o prince_n with_o much_o reverence_n only_o exhort_v they_o to_o cause_v their_o minister_n not_o to_o violate_v they_o the_o same_o day_n at_o night_n a_o congregation_n be_v make_v to_o begin_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o reformation_n and_o a_o order_n be_v set_v down_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v two_o congregation_n a_o day_n until_o all_o the_o voice_n be_v give_v which_o be_v deliver_v with_o great_a shortness_n &_o resolution_n except_o by_o some_o bishop_n a_o difficulty_n about_o subiect_v the_o chapter_n in_o spain_n to_o the_o bishop_n few_o spaniard_n who_o desire_v to_o hinder_v whereas_o all_o the_o other_o do_v endeavour_v to_o promote_v the_o expedition_n with_o brevity_n the_o great_a difficulty_n be_v concern_v the_o six_o article_n of_o the_o subjection_n of_o chapter_n to_o bishop_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o great_a interest_n which_o not_o only_o the_o bishop_n but_o the_o king_n also_o have_v in_o diminish_v the_o capitular_a authority_n that_o they_o may_v not_o oppose_v the_o subsidy_n which_o be_v often_o impose_v in_o spain_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n for_o the_o favour_n the_o legate_n do_v the_o chapter_n by_o who_o mean_n and_o for_o the_o reason_n allege_v many_o italian_n who_o first_o seem_v to_o favour_v the_o bishop_n turn_v on_o the_o chapter_n side_n the_o count_n of_o luna_n send_v a_o currier_n to_o rome_n in_o diligence_n by_o who_o advice_n vargas_n the_o ambassador_n entreat_v the_o pope_n for_o his_o favour_n to_o the_o bishop_n who_o according_a to_o his_o custom_n refer_v himself_o to_o the_o council_n the_o ambassador_n complain_v that_o the_o italian_a prelate_n have_v be_v persuade_v to_o change_v their_o opinion_n in_o that_o matter_n whereunto_o the_o pope_n ready_o answer_v that_o they_o change_v because_o they_o be_v free_a but_o that_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o agent_n for_o the_o chapter_n from_o the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a have_v be_v drive_v from_o thence_o and_o upon_o that_o occasion_n complain_v that_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n in_o trent_n do_v dissuade_v the_o finish_n of_o the_o council_n notwithstanding_o he_o write_v according_a to_o the_o ambassador_n request_n but_o in_o such_o term_n as_o do_v not_o disfavour_v the_o pretension_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o final_o the_o decree_n be_v make_v with_o some_o enlargement_n of_o the_o episcopal_a authority_n in_o spain_n but_o not_o so_o much_o as_o they_o desire_v the_o venetian_a ambassador_n make_v instance_n that_o in_o the_o article_n of_o patronage_n those_o of_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n be_v except_v those_o of_o their_o republic_n may_v be_v except_v also_o the_o legate_n be_v willing_a to_o please_v they_o but_o can_v hardly_o tell_v how_o for_o to_o except_v all_o republic_n be_v too_o much_o and_o to_o name_v they_o particular_o will_v breed_v matter_n of_o jealousy_n they_o find_v a_o temper_n to_o comprehend_v that_o in_o the_o number_n of_o king_n declare_v that_o among_o those_o be_v contain_v the_o possessor_n of_o kingdom_n though_o they_o have_v not_o the_o name_n in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o twenty_o day_n a_o proposition_n be_v make_v to_o demand_v the_o pope_n confirmation_n be_v demand_v demand_v the_o pope_n confirmation_n of_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n as_o well_o under_o paul_n and_o julius_n as_o under_o his_o holiness_n the_o archbishop_n of_o granata_n oppose_v say_v that_o in_o the_o sixteenth_o and_o last_o session_n under_o julius_n when_o the_o council_n be_v suspend_v it_o be_v ordain_v that_o all_o the_o decree_v make_v by_o the_o synod_n until_o then_o shall_v be_v observe_v without_o say_v that_o there_o be_v any_o need_n of_o confirmation_n so_o that_o to_o demand_v it_o now_o will_v be_v to_o condemn_v those_o father_n who_o then_o think_v that_o the_o decree_n may_v be_v execute_v without_o any_o confirmation_n at_o all_o he_o profess_v he_o do_v not_o say_v this_o because_o he_o dislike_v the_o demand_n of_o a_o
by_o the_o water_n side_n oh_o monstrous_a extraordinary_a madness_n nothing_o can_v be_v ratify_v which_o the_o bishop_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v the_o common_a people_n do_v decree_n unless_o the_o pope_n make_v himself_o the_o author_n of_o it_o a_o epistle_n write_v by_o john_n jewel_n bishop_n of_o sarum_n unto_o one_o seign_n r_o scipio_n a_o gentleman_n in_o venice_n in_o answer_n of_o a_o expostulatory_a letter_n of_o his_o concern_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n 1_o sir_n according_a to_o that_o intimate_a acquaintance_n which_o have_v be_v between_o we_o ever_o since_o we_o live_v together_o at_o milan_n you_o be_v employ_v in_o the_o affair_n of_o your_o commonweal_n l_o in_o my_o study_n you_o write_v unto_o i_o familiar_o that_o yourself_o and_o many_o other_o there_o with_o you_o wonder_n that_o since_o a_o general_n council_n at_o trent_n have_v be_v summon_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o settle_n of_o religion_n and_o remove_v of_o controversy_n and_o see_v already_o all_o other_o nation_n from_o all_o part_n be_v there_o assemble_v the_o realm_n of_o england_n alone_o have_v neither_o send_v any_o ambassador_n thither_o nor_o by_o any_o message_n or_o letter_n excuse_v their_o absence_n but_o without_o any_o council_n have_v alter_v almost_o all_o the_o form_n of_o the_o old_a ancient_a religion_n the_o former_a whereof_o as_o you_o say_v argue_v a_o proud_a stubbornness_n the_o other_o a_o pernicious_a schism_n for_o it_o be_v a_o superlative_a crime_n for_o any_o man_n to_o decline_v the_o most_o sacred_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o be_v call_v by_o he_o to_o a_o council_n to_o withdraw_v himself_o as_o for_o the_o controversy_n about_o religion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o debate_v they_o other_o where_o then_o in_o such_o assembly_n for_o there_o be_v the_o patriarch_n and_o bishop_n there_o be_v the_o learn_a man_n of_o all_o sort_n from_o their_o mouth_n the_o truth_n must_v be_v require_v there_o be_v the_o light_n of_o each_o church_n there_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o all_o godly_a prince_n if_o any_o doubt_n have_v rise_v concern_v god_n worship_n still_o refer_v it_o to_o a_o public_a consultation_n that_o moses_n joshua_n david_n ezechias_n josias_n and_o other_o judge_n king_n priest_n do_v not_o advise_v concern_v matter_n of_o religion_n elsewhere_o then_o in_o a_o assembly_n of_o bishop_n that_o christ_n apostle_n and_o the_o holy_a father_n hold_v counsel_n that_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o truth_n display_v her_o beam_n heresy_n be_v subdue_v so_o be_v arrius_n vanquish_v so_o eunomius_n so_o eutiches_n so_o macedonius_n so_o pelagius_n and_o that_o by_o the_o same_o mean_v the_o present_a distraction_n of_o the_o world_n may_v be_v compose_v and_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o church_n make_v up_o again_o if_o contention_n and_o faction_n lay_v aside_o we_o will_v come_v to_o a_o council_n without_o which_o nothing_o can_v lawful_o be_v attempt_v in_o religion_n 2_o this_o in_o effect_n be_v the_o sum_n of_o your_o letter_n i_o do_v not_o now_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o answer_v you_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n by_o what_o advice_n ●●●ry_a thing_n have_v be_v do_v neither_o do_v i_o think_v that_o you_o expect_v it_o from_o i_o or_o desire_v it_o the_o counsel_n of_o king_n be_v hide_v and_o secret_a and_o so_o ought_v to_o be_v you_o know_v the_o old_a say_n nor_o every_o where_o nor_o to_o all_o nor_o to_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n yet_o 〈◊〉_d ●ur_n old_a and_o intimate_a acquaintance_n because_o i_o see_v you_o desire_v it_o so_o earnest_o i_o will_v brief_o and_o friendly_a show_n you_o what_o i_o think_v but_o as_o he_o sales●_n as_o far_o as_o i_o know_v and_o be_o able_a and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o will_v satisfy_v you_o 3_o we_o wonder_v say_v you_o that_o no_o ambassador_n from_o england_n come_v to_o the_o council_n i_o pray_v you_o sir_n do_v englishmen_n only_a not_o come_v to_o this_o council_n be_v you_o yourself_o present_a at_o the_o council_n do_v you_o take_v a_o muster_n of_o they_o do_v you_o count_v they_o by_o the_o poll_n do_v you_o see_v that_o all_o other_o nation_n be_v meet_v from_o all_o part_n except_o only_o the_o english_a if_o you_o have_v such_o a_o mind_n to_o wonder_v why_o do_v not_o you_o wonder_v at_o this_o too_o that_o neither_o the_o three_o memorable_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n antioch_n and_o alexandria_n nor_o presbyter_n john_n nor_o the_o grecian_n armenian_n persian_n egyptian_n moor_n ethiopian_n or_o indian_n come_v to_o the_o council_n for_o do_v not_o many_o of_o these_o people_n believe_v in_o christ_n have_v they_o not_o bishop_n be_v they_o not_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v they_o not_o christian_n and_o so_o call_v or_o do_v there_o come_v ambassador_n from_o all_o these_o nation_n to_o the_o council_n or_o will_v you_o rather_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o call_v they_o or_o that_o your_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n take_v no_o hold_n of_o they_o 4_o but_o we_o wonder_v more_o at_o this_o that_o the_o pope_n will_v afterward_o call_v such_o man_n to_o a_o council_n who_o before_o hand_n he_o have_v condemn_v for_o heretic_n and_o open_o pronounce_v they_o excommunicate_a without_o hear_v either_o they_o or_o their_o plea._n for_o that_o man_n shall_v be_v first_o condemn_v and_o punish_v and_o afterward_o bring_v to_o their_o trial_n be_v absurd_a and_o as_o we_o say_v the_o cart_n before_o the_o horse_n but_o i_o will_v fain_o be_v resolve_v of_o this_o whether_o the_o pope_n meaning_n be_v to_o advise_v in_o the_o council_n concern_v religion_n with_o we_o who_o he_o account_v heretic_n or_o rather_o that_o we_o shall_v plead_v our_o cause_n at_o the_o bar_n and_o either_o change_v our_o opinion_n present_o or_o out_o of_o hand_n be_v condemn_v again_o the_o former_a be_v without_o example_n and_o deny_v heretofore_o by_o julius_n the_o three_o to_o those_o of_o our_o side_n the_o other_o be_v ridiculous_a if_o he_o think_v so_o that_o the_o english_a will_v come_v to_o the_o council_n only_o to_o be_v indict_v and_o to_o plead_v for_o themselves_o especial_o before_o he_o who_o long_o since_o be_v charge_v with_o most_o heinous_a crime_n not_o only_o by_o our_o side_n but_o also_o by_o their_o own_o 5_o now_o if_o england_n only_o seem_v to_o you_o thus_o stubborn_a where_o then_o be_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o king_n of_o denmark_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n of_o the_o king_n of_o sueden_n of_o the_o suitzer_n of_o the_o grison_n of_o the_o hanse_v town_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o scotland_n of_o the_o dukedom_n of_o prussia_n see_v so_o many_o christian_a nation_n be_v want_v in_o your_o council_n it_o be_v absurd_a to_o miss_v in_o your_o reckon_n only_o the_o english_a but_o why_o do_v i_o speak_v of_o these_o the_o pope_n himself_o come_v not_o to_o his_o own_o council_n and_o why_o do_v you_o not_o wonder_v at_o that_o also_o for_o what_o a_o pride_n be_v this_o for_o one_o man_n for_o his_o own_o pleasure_n to_o assemble_v together_o all_o christian_a king_n prince_n and_o bishop_n when_o he_o list_v and_o to_o require_v they_o to_o be_v at_o his_o call_n and_o himself_o not_o to_o come_v in_o their_o presence_n sure_o when_o the_o apostle_n summon_v assembly_n at_o jerusalem_n peter_n the_o apostle_n of_o who_o sea_n and_o succession_n they_o brag_v will_v not_o be_v absent_a but_o as_o i_o conceive_v pius_n the_o four_o the_o present_a pope_n remèmber_v what_o happen_v heretofore_o to_o john_n the_o 22_o that_o he_o come_v not_o in_o a_o very_a happy_a hour_n to_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n for_o he_o come_v pope_n but_o return_v cardinal_n therefore_o since_o then_o the_o pope_n have_v provide_v for_o themselves_o in_o the_o rear_n and_o keep_v home_o and_o have_v withstand_v all_o counsel_n and_o free_a dispute_n for_o above_o forty_o year_n since_o when_o doctor_n martin_n luther_n be_v curse_v by_o the_o pope_n with_o bell_n book_n and_o candle_n because_o he_o have_v begin_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o to_o reform_v religion_n out_o of_o god_n word_n and_o have_v humble_o request_v that_o his_o whole_a cause_n may_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o cognisance_n of_o a_o general_n council_n he_o can_v have_v no_o audience_n for_o pope_n leo_n the_o ten_o do_v see_v well_o enough_o if_o the_o matter_n shall_v come_v to_o a_o council_n that_o his_o own_o state_n may_v come_v in_o danger_n and_o that_o he_o may_v perchance_o hear_v what_o he_o will_v not_o willing_o 6_o indeed_o the_o name_n of_o a_o general_n council_n carry_v a_o fair_a show_n so_o it_o be_v assemble_v as_o it_o ought_v and_o affection_n lay_v aside_o all_o thing_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n
meae_fw-la donec_fw-la inveniam_fw-la locum_fw-la domino_fw-la &_o tabernaculum_fw-la deo_fw-la jacob_n o_o si_fw-la principes_fw-la christiani_n audire_fw-la vellent_fw-la vocem_fw-la domini_fw-la svi_fw-la nunc_fw-la reges_fw-la intelligite_fw-la inquit_fw-la dominus_fw-la erudimini_fw-la qui_fw-la iudicatis_fw-la terram_fw-la ego_fw-la inquit_fw-la dixi_fw-la dij_fw-la estis_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la homines_fw-la divinitùs_fw-la electi_fw-la quibus_fw-la nomen_fw-la meum_fw-la esset_fw-la curae_fw-la cogita_fw-la tu_fw-la quem_fw-la ego_fw-la desterquilinio_fw-la excitavi_fw-la &_o in_o summo_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la &_o honoris_fw-la gradu_fw-la collocavi_fw-la &_o praefeci_fw-la populo_fw-la meo_fw-la cum_fw-la ita_fw-la studiosè_fw-la aedifices_fw-la &_o orne_v domum_fw-la tuam_fw-la quo_fw-la animo_fw-la potes_fw-la contemnere_fw-la domum_fw-la meam_fw-la aut_fw-la quomodo_fw-la quotidie_fw-la oras_fw-la ut_fw-la regnum_fw-la tuum_fw-la tibi_fw-la posterisque_fw-la tuis_fw-la confirmetur_fw-la an_fw-mi ut_fw-la nomen_fw-la meum_fw-la semper_fw-la afficiatur_fw-la contumetia_fw-mi ut_fw-la evangeliam_fw-la christi_fw-la mei_fw-la extinguatur_fw-la ut_fw-la servi_fw-la mei_fw-la meâ_fw-la causâ_fw-la ante_fw-la oculos_fw-la tuos_fw-la te_fw-la inspectante_fw-la tracidentur_fw-la ut_fw-la tyrannis_fw-la longiùs_fw-la grassetur_fw-la ut_fw-la populo_fw-la meo_fw-la semper_fw-la imponatur_fw-la ut_fw-la per_fw-la te_fw-la scandalum_fw-la confirmetur_fw-la vae_fw-la illi_fw-la per_fw-la quem_fw-la venit_fw-la scandalum_fw-la vae_fw-la etiam_fw-la illi_fw-la per_fw-la quem_fw-la confirmatur_fw-la scandalum_fw-la horres_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la corporum_fw-la quanto_fw-la magis_fw-la horrere_fw-la debes_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la animarum_fw-la memineris_fw-la quid_fw-la acciderit_fw-la antiocho_n herodi_n juliano_n ego_fw-la regnum_fw-la tuum_fw-la transferam_fw-la ad_fw-la hostem_fw-la tuum_fw-la quia_fw-la peccasti_fw-la adversum_fw-la me_fw-it ego_fw-la muto_fw-la tempora_fw-la &_o vice_n temporum_fw-la abijcioreges_fw-la &_o instituo_fw-la ut_fw-la intelligas_fw-la i_o alunssimum_fw-la esse_fw-la &_o vim_o habere_fw-la in_o regno_fw-la hominum_fw-la &_o illud_fw-la dare_v cvi_fw-la volo_fw-la ego_fw-la humilio_fw-la &_o ego_fw-la exalto_fw-la ego_fw-la glorificantes_fw-la i_o glorisico_fw-la &_o eos_fw-la qui_fw-la i_o contemnunt_fw-la afficio_fw-la contumeliâ_fw-la andrea_n dudithius_fw-la episcopus_fw-la qvinqveecclesiensis_fw-la in_o epistola_fw-la ad_fw-la maximilianum_fw-la ii_o caesarem_fw-la ubi_fw-la sententiam_fw-la svam_fw-la refert_fw-la de_fw-la calais_n laicis_fw-la concedendo_fw-la &_o sacerdotum_fw-la coniugio_fw-la qvid_fw-la profici_fw-la potuit_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la concilio_n in_o quo_fw-la numerarentur_fw-la non_fw-la suis_fw-la momentis_fw-la ponderarentur_fw-la sententiae_fw-la si_fw-mi caussa_fw-la si_fw-la ratione_fw-la pugnandum_fw-la fuisset_fw-la si_fw-la pauci_fw-la quidam_fw-la socij_fw-la nobis_fw-la adfuissent_fw-la viceramus_fw-la quamuis_fw-la pauci_fw-la magnas_fw-la copias_fw-la adversariorum_fw-la sed_fw-la cum_fw-la numerus_fw-la tantùm_fw-la prodiret_fw-la in_o aciem_fw-la quo_fw-la longè_fw-la inferiores_fw-la futuri_fw-la fuissemus_fw-la in_fw-la optima_fw-la causa_fw-la victores_fw-la discedere_fw-la non_fw-la potuimus_fw-la singulis_n nostrum_fw-la centenos_fw-la de_fw-fr suis_fw-fr papa_n potuit_fw-la opponere_fw-la ac_fw-la si_fw-la centeni_fw-la parum_fw-la multi_fw-la viderentur_fw-la repentè_fw-fr mille_fw-la creare_fw-la potuit_fw-la quos_fw-la suis_fw-la laborantibus_fw-la subsidio_fw-la mitteret_fw-la itaque_fw-la videre_fw-la erat_fw-la quotidie_fw-la famelicos_fw-la &_o egentes_fw-la episcopos_fw-la exmaiori_fw-la parte_fw-la barbatulos_fw-la adolescentes_fw-la luxúque_fw-la perditos_fw-la tridentum_n volitare_fw-la conductos_fw-la ad_fw-la sententiam_fw-la secundùm_fw-la papae_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la dicendam_fw-la indoctos_fw-la illos_fw-la quidem_fw-la &_o stolidos_fw-la sed_fw-la tamen_fw-la impudentia_fw-la &_o audacia_fw-la utiles_fw-la he_o cum_fw-la ad_fw-la veteres_fw-la adulatores_fw-la papae_fw-la accesserant_fw-la tum_fw-la verò_fw-la victrix_fw-la exultabat_fw-la iniquitas_fw-la neque_fw-la decerni_fw-la iam_fw-la quidquam_fw-la potuit_fw-la nisi_fw-la in_o eorum_fw-la sententiam_fw-la qui_fw-la papae_fw-la potentiam_fw-la luxúmque_fw-la defendere_fw-la summam_fw-la religionem_fw-la arbitrabantur_fw-la erat_fw-la aliquis_fw-la vir_fw-la gravis_fw-la &_o eruditus_fw-la qui_fw-la tantam_fw-la indignitatem_fw-la far_o not_o poterat_fw-la hic_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la bone_fw-la catholicus_n terror_fw-la minis_fw-la ac_fw-la insectatione_n à_fw-la concilio_n ad_fw-la probandum_fw-la quae_fw-la nollet_fw-la traducebatur_fw-la in_o summa_fw-la in_fw-la eum_fw-la statum_fw-la res_fw-la est_fw-la adducta_fw-la istorum_fw-la qui_fw-la illuc_fw-la facti_fw-la institutique_fw-la venerant_fw-la improbitate_fw-la non_fw-la ut_fw-la iam_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la sed_fw-la laruarum_fw-la non_fw-la hominum_fw-la sed_fw-la simulacrorum_fw-la quae_fw-la neruis_fw-la moventur_fw-la alienis_fw-la ut_fw-la daedali_fw-la statuae_fw-la fuisse_fw-la perhibentur_fw-la concilium_fw-la illud_fw-la videretur_fw-la erant_fw-la episcopi_fw-la illi_fw-la conductitij_fw-la plerique_fw-la ut_fw-la utres_fw-la rusticorum_fw-la musicum_fw-la instrumentum_fw-la quos_fw-la ut_fw-la vocem_fw-la mittant_fw-la inflare_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la nil_fw-la habuit_fw-la cum_fw-la illo_fw-la conventu_fw-la s._n spiritus_fw-la commereij_fw-la omne_fw-la erant_fw-la humana_fw-la consilia_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o immodica_fw-la &_o sanè_fw-la quàm_fw-la pudenda_fw-la pontificum_fw-la tuenda_fw-la dominatione_fw-la consumebantur_fw-la illinc_fw-la responsa_fw-la tanquam_fw-la delphis_n aut_fw-la dodonâ_fw-la expectabantur_fw-la illinc_fw-la nimirum_fw-la spiritus_fw-la ille_fw-la s._n quem_fw-la suis_fw-la concilijs_fw-la prae_fw-la esse_fw-la iactant_fw-la tabellarij_fw-la manticis_fw-la inclusus_fw-la mittebatur_fw-la qui_fw-la quod_fw-la admodum_fw-la ridiculum_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la aliquando_fw-la ut_fw-la fit_n aquae_fw-la plwijs_fw-la excrescebant_fw-la non_fw-la ante_fw-la advolare_fw-la poterat_fw-la quàm_fw-la inundationes_fw-la desedissent_fw-la ita_fw-la fiebat_fw-la ut_fw-la spiritus_fw-la non_fw-la super_fw-la aquas_fw-la ut_fw-la est_fw-la in_o genesi_fw-la sed_fw-la secus_fw-la aquas_fw-la ferretur_fw-la o_o portentosam_n &_o singularem_fw-la dementiam_fw-la ratum_fw-la nihil_fw-la esse_fw-la poterat_fw-la quod_fw-la episcopi_fw-la tanquam_fw-la plebs_fw-la sciscerent_fw-la nisi_fw-la papa_n author_n fieret_fw-la a_o alphabetical_a table_n of_o all_o the_o principal_a matter_n contain_v in_o this_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n a_o abuse_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v collect_v to_o be_v reform_v pag._n 83_o 84_o acclamation_n use_v in_o former_a counsel_n and_o imitate_v in_o trent_n 813_o adrian_n 6._o be_v create_v pope_n be_v much_o fear_v for_o his_o severity_n 19_o be_v learn_v in_o schoole-divinitie_n be_v bear_v in_o vtrect_n resolve_v to_o reform_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n 20_o be_v dissuade_v from_o it_o 23_o he_o lament_v because_o the_o pope_n can_v do_v good_a though_o they_o desire_v it_o never_o so_o much_o 24_o he_o confess_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o clergy_n not_o exempt_n the_o apostolic_a sea_n 25_o his_o death_n and_o praise_n 30_o amante_n seruita_fw-la a_o friar_n of_o brescia_n concur_v in_o opinion_n with_o luther_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n and_o be_v silence_v 522_o ambassador_n in_o trent_n hold_v a_o consultation_n how_o to_o remedy_v the_o proceed_n in_o council_n and_o choose_v the_o french_a ambassador_n lansac_n to_o speak_v for_o they_o 570_o 571_o the_o ambassador_n in_o trent_n do_v not_o subscribe_v the_o decree_n when_o the_o council_n be_v end_v 813_o andreas_n vega_n chief_a of_o the_o franciscan_n dispute_v that_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o lutheran_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v without_o declare_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o catboliques_n 179_o he_o write_v against_o soto_n 216_o anna_n du_fw-fr bourg_n be_v burn_v in_o france_n for_o religion_n and_o his_o constancy_n cause_v a_o great_a increase_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n 419_o annat_n be_v speak_v against_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o nismes_n 716_o appeal_v and_o their_o original_n 334_o 335_o apostolic_a sea_n what_o it_o be_v 321_o archbishop_n of_o collen_n be_v cite_v by_o the_o emperor_n to_o clear_v himself_o of_o lutheranisme_n object_v against_o he_o 124_o and_o by_o the_o pope_n at_o the_o same_o time_n 125_o be_v sentence_v by_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o sentence_n be_v not_o execute_v by_o the_o emperor_n until_o certain_a year_n after_o 165_o he_o be_v obey_v by_o his_o people_n 189_o be_v proceed_v against_o by_o the_o emperor_n and_o prince_n adolphus_n put_v in_o his_o place_n 259_o arch-bishp_a of_o otranto_n oppose_v the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n and_o have_v forty_o voice_n at_o his_o command_n 719_o be_v reprehend_v by_o the_o spanish_a ambassador_n for_o make_v private_a congregation_n 759_o archbishop_n of_o toledo_n be_v in_o the_o inquisition_n of_o spain_n his_o book_n be_v examine_v in_o council_n and_o approve_a 750_o aremboldus_n be_v agent_n for_o the_o pope_n sister_n to_o vent_v her_o indulgence_n 5_o augustan_n confession_n whence_o it_o have_v the_o name_n and_o when_o the_o first_o liberty_n to_o beprofessed_a public_o 63_o auignion_n rebell_v against_o the_o pope_n 429_o 430_o b_o bando_n set_v forth_o by_o the_o emperor_n against_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n and_o the_o landgrave_n of_o hassia_n 201_o baptism_n discuss_v 242_o whether_o that_o of_o john_n be_v equal_a to_o christ_n baptism_n 243_o battle_n of_o s._n quintin_n in_o which_o the_o french_a king_n receive_v a_o great_a overthrow_n 406_o battle_n in_o france_n between_o the_o protestant_n and_o papist_n in_o which_o the_o prince_n of_o conde_n be_v take_v prisoner_n 647_o cause_v much_o joy_n in_o trent_n 649_o bavaria_n desire_v liberty_n of_o religion_n 397._o 398_o the_o bavarian_a ambassador_n make_v a_o bite_a oration_n in_o council_n against_o
731_o 732_o the_o decree_n be_v read_v for_o save_v the_o pope_n authority_n which_o be_v never_o mention_v before_o 812_o the_o pope_n authority_n whether_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n 812_o pope_n only_o must_v interpret_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 818_o portugal_n ambassador_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n 476_o preach_v claim_v by_o the_o regulars_n as_o belong_v to_o they_o which_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o prelate_n 161_o 167_o precedence_n be_v claim_v by_o don_n diego_n the_o spanish_a ambassador_n before_o the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n 114_o 117_o by_o the_o duke_n of_o florence_n before_o the_o duke_n of_o ferrara_n 443_o prince_n of_o the_o blood_n in_o france_n have_v precedence_n of_o the_o cardinal_n 449_o the_o prelate_n in_o trent_n differ_v about_o precedence_n 467_o and_o so_o do_v the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n and_o hungary_n 480_o likewise_o the_o bavarian_a and_o venetian_a ambassador_n differ_v about_o precedence_n 501_o and_o so_o do_v the_o french_a and_o spanish_a ambassador_n in_o trent_n 663_o in_o rome_n 713_o and_o again_o in_o trent_n 727_o 728_o 729_o predestination_n be_v discuss_v 210_o 211_o etc._n etc._n precedent_n send_v by_o the_o pope_n do_v never_o govern_v counsel_n before_o that_o of_o constance_n 137_o they_o give_v auricular_a voice_n in_o trent_n 616_o precedent_n name_v for_o the_o second_o reduction_n of_o the_o council_n in_o trent_n 310_o for_o the_o three_o reduction_n 444_o 445_o the_o precedent_n only_o do_v give_v audience_n to_o the_o ambassador_n 553._o two_o new_a precedent_n 681_o precedent_n of_o counsel_n what_o authority_n they_o have_v 707_o priesthood_n and_o the_o decree_n concern_v it_o 738_o the_o anathematisme_n belong_v to_o it_o 739_o prince_n of_o conde_n be_v imprison_v 436_o prince_n of_o orange_n marry_v a_o daughter_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n 456_o proctor_n send_v by_o the_o viceroy_n of_o naples_n to_o give_v voice_n in_o council_n for_o all_o the_o clergy_n of_o that_o kingdom_n 118_o the_o pope_n decree_v that_o none_o shall_v give_v voice_n by_o proctor_n 118_o the_o proctor_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o mentz_n be_v about_o to_o leave_v the_o council_n 122_o prohibition_n of_o book_n be_v discourse_v on_o by_o the_o author_n 472_o protestant_n make_v a_o conditional_a submission_n to_o the_o council_n 274_o a_o consultation_n how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v in_o council_n 367_o protestant_a divine_n of_o wittenberg_n and_o strasburg_n come_v to_o trent_n 374_o fifty_o thousand_o protestant_n be_v execute_v in_o the_o low-countries_n within_o a_o short_a space_n 413_o the_o protestant_n assemble_v in_o noremburg_n and_o the_o pope_n send_v nuncii_fw-la unto_o they_o 439_o protestation_n of_o doctor_n that_o they_o refer_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n be_v but_o word_n of_o compliment_n and_o of_o good_a manner_n 249_o protestation_n of_o the_o emperor_n against_o the_o council_n of_o bolonia_n 279_o 280_o another_o protestation_n in_o rome_n before_o the_o pope_n 281_o which_o the_o pope_n say_v the_o ambassador_n do_v make_v without_o commission_n from_o his_o master_n 282_o the_o ambassador_n protest_v again_o 284_o the_o french_a k._n protest_v against_o the_o council_n in_o trent_n 319_o the_o intend_a protestation_n of_o the_o french_a ambassador_n about_o precedence_n 730_o 731_o proverb_n in_o trent_n very_o blasphemous_a about_o the_o bring_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o rome_n 497_o another_o proverb_n in_o council_n we_o be_v fall_v from_o the_o spanish_a scab_n to_o the_o french_a pox_n 640_o a_o kind_n of_o proverb_n make_v in_o france_n concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n 822_o purgatory_n be_v speak_v of_o 799_o q._n queen_n mary_n governess_n of_o the_o low_a country_n favour_v the_o protestant_n 89_o queen_n mother_n of_o france_n refuse_v a_o spanish_a army_n to_o assist_v she_o against_o the_o hugonot_n 648_o write_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n 712_o be_v complain_v of_o by_o the_o pather_n for_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o chastillon_n and_o other_o hugonot_n in_o france_n 776_o queen_n of_o scotland_n write_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 703_o queen_n of_o england_n shall_v have_v be_v proceed_v against_o in_o council_n but_o the_o emperor_n will_v not_o fuffer_v it_o 727_o queen_n of_o navarre_n be_v cite_v to_o rome_n for_o lutheranisme_n 780_o and_o be_v defend_v by_o the_o french_a king_n 794_o 795_o r._n reformation_n make_v by_o cardinal_n campeggio_n in_o the_o diet_n of_o noremberg_n 32_o 33_o etc._n etc._n a_o reformation_n make_v in_o rome_n under_o paul_n the_o three_o be_v suppress_v 79_o a_o reformation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v set_v on_o foot_n and_o much_o discuss_v 83_o 84_o the_o emperor_n will_v have_v reformation_n handle_v before_o doctrine_n 202_o it_o be_v whole_o recall_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v handle_v in_o rome_n but_o the_o prelate_n will_v not_o yield_v 254_o 255_o a_o reformation_n of_o the_o clergy_n publish_v by_o the_o emperor_n 292_o a_o reformation_n make_v in_o council_n be_v complain_v of_o by_o the_o priest_n 343_o another_o be_v make_v in_o rome_n of_o small_a matter_n only_o 505_o twenty_o point_n of_o reformation_n be_v propose_v by_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n 513_o nine_o point_n of_o reformation_n 532_o 538_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o reformation_n be_v omit_v 568_o reformation_n be_v main_o promote_v in_o council_n by_o the_o imperialist_n and_o spaniard_n 588_o the_o free_a speech_n in_o council_n concern_v reformation_n do_v trouble_v the_o legate_n 595_o 600_o the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n how_o it_o begin_v 617_o article_n of_o reformation_n propose_v in_o council_n by_o the_o frenchman_n 650_o 652_o the_o pope_n think_v that_o a_o reformation_n will_v not_o reduce_v the_o heretic_n 700_o a_o reformation_n of_o cardinal_n be_v main_o promote_v but_o vanish_v quick_o 726_o a_o reformation_n propose_v by_o the_o imperialist_n 751_o 752_o the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n be_v defer_v 760_o a_o hundred_o prelate_n do_v combine_v to_o promote_v it_o 766_o it_o be_v declare_v at_o large_a 769_o 770_o the_o emperor_n dista_v it_o and_o the_o french_a ambassador_n de_fw-fr ferrieres_n make_v a_o oration_n against_o it_o 771_o 772_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o general_a reformation_n 808_o 809_o etc._n etc._n the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n 811_o 812_o etc._n etc._n regulars_n be_v complain_v of_o by_o the_o prelate_n and_o defend_v themselves_o 169_o they_o begin_v to_o mutiny_v about_o their_o exemption_n 761_o their_o reformation_n 806_o religion_n be_v change_v in_o england_n 295_o 384_o 421_o religion_n be_v change_v in_o denmark_n 84_o religion_n be_v change_v in_o the_o palatinate_n 148_o 398_o religion_n be_v change_v in_o scotland_n 426_o 451_o reputation_n be_v the_o chief_a ground_n of_o the_o papal_a greatness_n 29_o residence_n be_v treat_v of_o 191_o 216_o 217_o etc._n etc._n whether_o it_o be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la 218_o 219_o the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n will_v not_o suffer_v that_o question_n to_o be_v decide_v 232_o the_o question_n be_v set_v on_o foot_n again_o 486_o 487_o etc._n etc._n it_o cause_v great_a fear_n in_o rome_n 502_o be_v dispute_v on_o again_o 505_o 510_o the_o disputation_n of_o it_o be_v divert_v by_o the_o legate_n 550_o residence_n be_v decree_v 723_o 736_o the_o reformation_n of_o it_o be_v decree_v 739_o richard_n of_o vercelli_n die_v with_o grief_n because_o he_o be_v in_o disgrace_n with_o the_o legate_n for_o speak_v free_o in_o council_n 566_o 569_o rite_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v diverse_a 548_o rome_n be_v take_v by_o the_o colonnesi_n 41_o and_o by_o the_o dutchman_n and_o duke_n of_o borbon_n 43_o rota_n in_o rome_n which_o be_v the_o great_a court_n of_o justice_n there_o reject_v a_o cause_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o segovia_n assist_v in_o council_n for_o suspicion_n of_o heresy_n because_o he_o do_v not_o second_v the_o pope_n design_n 678_o s._n sacrament_n in_o general_n be_v handle_v 234_o 235_o etc._n etc._n how_o they_o do_v contain_v and_o cause_n grace_n 237_o a_o decree_n of_o reformation_n be_v make_v concern_v they_o 245_o and_o anathematism_n 248_o safeconduct_a be_v require_v by_o the_o protestant_n to_o go_v to_o the_o council_n 316_o the_o content_n of_o it_o 341_o it_o be_v dislike_v by_o the_o protestant_n 343_o 344_o the_o council_n refuse_v to_o alter_v it_o 369_o santa-croce_n the_o legate_n be_v threaten_v by_o the_o emperor_n to_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o river_n adice_n 202_o schism_n in_o the_o council_n some_o remain_v in_o trent_n and_o other_o be_v go_v to_o bolonia_n 269_o 274_o scotland_n shake_v off_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n 426_o 451_o session_n the_o first_o hold_v in_o trent_n deocin_n 13._o a_o 1545._o 130_o the_o second_o jan._n 7._o 1546._o 139_o the_o three_o feb._n 4._o 1546._o